Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a scripture_n time_n 2,768 5 3.3859 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A19326 Doctrinall and morall observations concerning religion vvherein the author declareth the reasons of his late vn-enforced departure from the Church of Rome, and of his incorporation to the present Church of England : teaching, maintaining and defending the true Christian Catholike and apostolike faith, professed by the ancient primitiue church, most conspicuous in the outward vertues and constant sufferings of many holy bishops and other good Christians, glorious in the crowne of martyrdome / by Iohn Copley ... Copley, John, 1577-1662. 1612 (1612) STC 5742; ESTC S299 195,885 256

There are 32 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o which_o be_v gentilism_n but_o now_o it_o be_v no_o way_n know_v unto_o those_o which_o desire_v to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n but_o only_o by_o scripture_n wherefore_o because_o all_o these_o thing_n which_o belong_v so_o proper_o to_o christ_n in_o truth_n heresy_n have_v the_o same_o also_o in_o schism_n church_n likewise_o holy_a scripture_n likewise_o bishop_n likewise_o and_o other_o order_n of_o clerk_n baptism_n likewise_o the_o eucharist_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n last_o christ_n himself_o one_o therefore_o that_o desire_v to_o know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n whence_o shall_v he_o know_v it_o in_o the_o confusion_n of_o such_o likeness_n but_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n this_o note_v this_o likewise_o heretofore_o they_o be_v know_v by_o miracle_n who_o be_v true_a christian_n who_o false_a how_o false_a christian_n either_o can_v not_o do_v miracle_n as_o true_a christian_n do_v or_o else_o they_o can_v not_o do_v such_o as_o true_a christian_n do_v but_o now_o the_o work_n of_o miracle_n be_v altogether_o take_v away_o and_o it_o be_v more_o find_v that_o false_a miracle_n be_v wrought_v by_o those_o who_o be_v false_a christian_n as_o peter_n according_a to_o clement_n expound_v also_o power_n be_v to_o be_v also_o give_v of_o do_v full_a miracle_n unto_o antichrist_n likewise_o heretofore_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v understand_v by_o their_o manner_n when_o the_o conversation_n of_o all_o or_o most_o christian_n be_v holy_a which_o be_v not_o among_o the_o wicked_a but_o now_o either_o such_o or_o worse_a christian_n be_v become_v than_o heretic_n or_o gentile_n and_o moreover_o great_a continency_n be_v find_v among_o those_o who_o live_v in_o schism_n then_o among_o christian_n he_o therefore_o that_o will_v know_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n whence_o shall_v he_o know_v it_o but_o only_o the_o scripture_n this_o note_v this_o the_o lord_n therefore_o know_v that_o such_o a_o confusion_n of_o thing_n shall_v come_v in_o the_o last_o day_n he_o therefore_o command_v that_o christian_n who_o be_v in_o the_o christianity_n be_v desirous_a to_o obtain_v firmness_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n shall_v fly_v unto_o nothing_o but_o unto_o the_o scripture_n again_o note_v again_o for_o otherwise_o if_o they_o have_v regard_n to_o other_o thing_n they_o shall_v be_v scandalize_v and_o shall_v perish_v not_o understand_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o by_o this_o they_o shall_v fall_v into_o the_o abomination_n of_o desolation_n which_o shall_v stand_v in_o the_o holy_a place_n of_o the_o church_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o only_a mean_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a church_n be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n especial_o in_o these_o latter_a time_n to_o which_o we_o be_v now_o arrive_v 5_o to_o our_o purpose_n also_o gregory_n nissen_n call_v the_o scripture_n hierosolimam_fw-la other_o father_n orat._n the_o eye_v qui_fw-la adeunt_fw-la hierosolimam_fw-la a_o straight_a and_o inflexible_a rule_n i_o observe_v also_o saint_n augustine_n to_o join_v with_o the_o former_a who_o say_v the_o scripture_n pitch_v down_o the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n 1._o de_fw-fr bono_fw-mi vid._n cap._n 1._o and_o again_o he_o say_v this_o controversy_n depend_v between_o we_o require_v a_o judge_n and_o let_v the_o apostle_n paul_n judge_v with_o he_o because_o christ_n also_o speak_v in_o his_o apostle_n paulin._n de_fw-fr nupt_a &_o cencup_n ad_fw-la vater_fw-mi lib._n 2._o cap._n 33._o epist_n 112._o ad_fw-la paulin._n in_o another_o place_n if_o a_o matter_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o clear_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n such_o i_o mean_v as_o the_o church_n call_v canonical_a it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v without_o all_o doubt_n but_o as_o for_o other_o witness_n and_o testimony_n upon_o who_o credit_n any_o thing_n may_v be_v urge_v unto_o we_o to_o believe_v it_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o thou_o either_o to_o credit_v or_o not_o to_o credit_v they_o according_a as_o thou_o shall_v perceive_v they_o of_o weight_n to_o deserve_v or_o not_o to_o deserve_v credit_n he_o say_v beside_o 42._o de_fw-fr doctrine_n christiau_n lib_n 2._o cap_n 9_o ibid._n cap._n 42._o all_o point_n which_o concern_v faith_n and_o good_a life_n be_v find_v in_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v plain_o set_v down_o in_o scripture_n and_o again_o in_o another_o place_n whatsoever_o it_o be_v that_o a_o man_n learn_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n if_o it_o be_v hurtful_a there_o it_o be_v condemn_v if_o it_o be_v profitable_a there_o it_o be_v find_v 11._o tract_n 3._o in_o 1._o epist_n joh._n contra_fw-la lit_fw-fr petilian_n d●●at_fw-la lib._n 3_o cap._n 6_o &_o de_fw-la unit_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 11._o again_o he_o say_v the_o church_n be_v our_o mother_n her_o breast_n be_v the_o two_o testament_n of_o the_o scripture_n whence_o she_o give_v her_o child_n milk_n again_o further_o if_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n declare_v unto_o you_o either_o concern_v christ_n or_o his_o church_n any_o other_o matter_n or_o any_o thing_n belong_v to_o our_o faith_n or_o life_n but_o what_o you_o have_v receive_v in_o the_o legal_a and_o evangelicall_a scripture_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v the_o same_o famous_a doctor_n likewise_o revoke_v from_o miracle_n to_o scripture_n 16._o de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 16._o say_v say_v not_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o because_o such_o a_o one_o do_v such_o and_o such_o marualles_n but_o let_v they_o prove_v their_o church_n by_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n and_o by_o nothing_o else_o these_o be_v the_o demonstration_n of_o our_o cause_n these_o be_v our_o foundation_n these_o be_v our_o ground_n whereupon_o we_o build_v and_o again_o our_o faith_n shall_v reel_v &_o totter_v if_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n stand_v not_o fast_o by_o all_o which_o according_a to_o this_o famous_a doctor_n who_o be_v term_v malleus_fw-la haereticorum_fw-la the_o hammer_n of_o heretic_n you_o see_v this_o rule_n of_o faith_n most_o clear_o approve_v and_o justify_v 6_o neither_o do_v other_o ancient_a writer_n swerve_v from_o the_o same_o doctrine_n 61._o other_o father_n de_fw-fr error_n profane_v relig_n p._n 61._o for_o julius_n firminus_n say_v let_v the_o venerable_a mystery_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v open_v let_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o holy_a oracle_n stand_v by_o us._n origen_n further_a say_v jerem_n hom._n 1._o in_o jerem_n we_o must_v of_o necessity_n call_v the_o scripture_n to_o witness_v for_o our_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n without_o they_o be_v of_o no_o credit_n cyrill_n the_o bishop_n of_o jerusalem_n say_v concern_v the_o holy_a and_o heavenly_a mystery_n of_o faith_n 15._o catech._n 4._o pag._n 15._o we_o must_v not_o deliver_v any_o thing_n though_o never_o so_o small_a this_o note_v this_o without_o the_o holy_a scripture_n neither_o may_v we_o be_v lead_v away_o with_o probability_n and_o show_v of_o word_n neither_o yet_o believe_v i_o bare_o say_v these_o thing_n unto_o you_o unless_o thou_o also_o believe_v the_o demonstration_n thereof_o from_o the_o scripture_n for_o the_o security_n of_o our_o faith_n arise_v from_o the_o demonstration_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o emperor_n constantine_n in_o his_o speech_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n have_v this_o memorable_a say_n 284._o theod_n hist_o li._n 1._o c._n 7._o pag._n 284._o we_o have_v the_o teach_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n write_v for_o the_o enangelicall_a and_o apostolic_a book_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o old_a prophet_n do_v evident_o teach_v we_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v needful_a to_o be_v know_v concern_v god_n therefore_o lay_v aside_o all_o contention_n let_v we_o out_o of_o the_o dinine_a inspire_a scripture_n take_v the_o rersolution_n of_o those_o thing_n we_o seek_v for_o neither_o will_v i_o let_v my_o pen_n paste_v another_o notable_a say_n of_o saint_n augustine_n which_o be_v diligent_o to_o be_v note_v say_v 21._o in_o io._n tract_n 21._o some_o may_v object_v we_o do_v rash_o in_o discuss_v and_o search_v out_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o way_n be_v they_o utter_v if_o they_o may_v not_o be_v know_v why_o have_v they_o sound_v if_o they_o may_v not_o be_v hear_v and_o why_o be_v they_o hear_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v understand_v they_o thus_o the_o ancient_n resolve_v i_o in_o the_o security_n of_o this_o rule_n 7_o and_o not_o only_o these_o writer_n proof_n of_o late_a writer_n but_o also_o the_o modern_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n forget_v themselves_o as_o it_o seem_v in_o their_o writing_n even_o against_o their_o own_o ground_n about_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n have_v give_v i_o no_o less_o evidence_n for_o this_o most_o straight_o and_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o the_o sacred_a letter_n and_o canonical_a book_n than_o the_o former_a for_o first_o their_o great_a
light_n of_o scripture_n 18._o psal_n 119._o vers_fw-la 10.4_o psal_n 119._o vers_fw-la 18._o unto_o thy_o lord_n god_n lucerna_fw-la pedibus_fw-la meis_fw-la verbum_fw-la tuum_fw-la &_o lumen_fw-la semitis_fw-la meis_fw-la thy_o word_n be_v a_o lamp_n unto_o my_o foot_n and_o a_o light_n unto_o my_o path_n and_o again_o open_v thou_o my_o eye_n that_o i_o may_v behold_v wondrous_a thing_n out_o of_o the_o law_n 11_o yet_o thou_o be_v to_o have_v great_a care_n that_o thou_o make_v not_o this_o rule_n long_o than_o it_o be_v nor_o short_a for_o this_o be_v forbid_v by_o christ_n himself_o speak_v against_o such_o a_o one_o saying_n i_o protest_v unto_o every_o man_n that_o hear_v the_o word_n of_o the_o prophecy_n of_o this_o book_n 19_o apoc._n 22.18_o 19_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v add_v unto_o these_o thing_n god_n shall_v add_v unto_o he_o the_o plague_n that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n and_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v take_v away_o from_o the_o word_n of_o the_o book_n of_o this_o prephecie_n god_n shall_v take_v away_o his_o part_n out_o of_o the_o book_n of_o life_n and_o out_o of_o the_o holy_a city_n and_o from_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n this_o fault_n of_o add_v to_o the_o book_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v very_o notorious_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o i_o have_v due_o observe_v 41._o sesse_n 41._o for_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n add_v to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n diverse_a apocryphal_a book_n which_o must_v be_v believe_v as_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o namely_o tobias_n judith_n hester_n and_o the_o two_o book_n of_o the_o macchabee_n esdras_n wisdom_n and_o ecclesiasticus_fw-la all_o which_o be_v learned_o prove_v to_o be_v apocryphal_a by_o the_o right_n reverend_a father_n in_o god_n my_o lord_n grace_n of_o canterbury_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o master_n doctor_n hill_n his_o eight_o reason_n sequent_a num._n 3._o &_o sequent_a the_o consideration_n whereof_o make_v i_o plain_o conclude_v that_o herein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v great_a and_o apparent_a occasion_n for_o any_o to_o judge_v that_o she_o err_v and_o consequent_o not_o to_o hear_v her_o voice_n thus_o utter_v falsehood_n for_o truth_n give_v equal_a authority_n to_o the_o apocryphal_a book_n with_o the_o holy_a canonical_a scripture_n chap._n vii_o contain_v a_o observation_n how_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o mean_n of_o teach_v the_o true_a sense_n and_o understanding_n of_o scripture_n where_o and_o when_o it_o have_v a_o visible_a and_o external_a government_n although_o i_o have_v clear_o discover_v scripture_n the_o external_a ministe_n rye_n of_o the_o church_n a_o ordinary_a mean_n to_o know_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v the_o chief_a infallible_a rule_n of_o faith_n and_o most_o sufficient_a in_o the_o precedent_a observation_n yet_o can_v i_o not_o rest_v satisfy_v till_o i_o find_v also_o a_o mean_n for_o the_o simple_a and_o unlearned_a to_o ground_v their_o faith_n upon_o because_o deus_fw-la vult_fw-la omnes_fw-la saluos_fw-la fieri_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la agnitionem_fw-la veritatis_fw-la venire_fw-la god_n will_v have_v all_o to_o be_v save_v 2.4_o 1._o tim._n 2.4_o and_o come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o truth_n and_o as_o well_o as_o he_o in_o the_o government_n of_o his_o creature_n have_v his_o end_n to_o which_o he_o design_v they_o so_o also_o by_o his_o wisdom_n he_o do_v most_o prudent_o substitute_v subordinate_a mean_n for_o the_o full_a accomplishment_n of_o such_o his_o designment_n now_o therefore_o how_o those_o that_o be_v neither_o able_a to_o read_v the_o scripture_n or_o though_o they_o be_v able_a have_v not_o sufficient_a skill_n and_o knowledge_n to_o consider_v the_o circumstance_n of_o text_n and_o by_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n not_o learned_a enough_o to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n nor_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o interpretation_n as_o many_o and_o most_o have_v not_o whereupon_o arise_v many_o depravation_n of_o scripture_n how_o such_o shall_v be_v direct_v in_o the_o right_a use_n of_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n &_o in_o find_v out_o the_o right_a meaning_n of_o they_o i_o think_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o great_a weight_n well_o to_o discover_v and_o by_o the_o declaration_n thereof_o to_o afford_v a_o stay_n to_o weak_a conscience_n in_o this_o behalf_n in_o the_o scrious_a discussion_n of_o which_o point_n it_o please_v almighty_a god_n so_o to_o second_v my_o careful_a labour_n and_o endeavour_n herein_o as_o that_o i_o receive_v full_a satisfaction_n in_o my_o own_o judgement_n by_o this_o conclusion_n namely_o that_o the_o most_o ordinary_a external_a direction_n leave_v by_o god_n especial_o to_o direct_v unlearned_a man_n in_o the_o find_n out_o of_o the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o church_n in_o this_o respect_n be_v call_v 5.14_o 1._o tim._n 3.15_o matt._n 5.14_o the_o pillar_n of_o truth_n and_o the_o minister_n thereof_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n 2_o and_o therefore_o as_o master_n harding_n himself_o confess_v 36._o true_a understanding_n of_o scripture_n only_o in_o the_o church_n doctor_n hard._n con●ut_o of_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n fol._n 36._o master_fw-mi celuine_n admonish_v very_o well_o that_o it_o be_v especial_o to_o be_v note_v that_o out_o of_o the_o church_n there_o be_v no_o light_n of_o the_o sound_a understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o the_o inconsiderate_a doctor_n make_v a_o very_a fond_a inference_n upon_o this_o ground_n say_v this_o ground_n be_v lay_v on_o which_o each_o part_n must_v sland_z and_o be_v try_v in_o crow_v no_o more_o against_o we_o boast_v yourselves_o no_o more_o we_o fear_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n nay_o it_o be_v yourselves_o that_o fear_v this_o judgement_n for_o your_o own_o conscience_n tell_v you_o that_o on_o this_o ground_n you_o be_v the_o weak_a side_n 7._o jnstit_fw-la lib._n 4_o cap._n 8._o num_fw-la 7._o he_o forget_v that_o master_n caluine_v say_v let_v this_o be_v a_o firm_a axiom_n that_o no_o other_o word_n of_o god_n be_v to_o be_v have_v to_o which_o place_n must_v be_v give_v in_o the_o church_n than_o what_o be_v maintain_v first_o in_o the_o law_n and_o prophet_n then_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o way_n of_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n but_o by_o the_o prescript_n and_o rule_n of_o his_o word_n if_o master_n harding_n have_v well_o observe_v this_o he_o will_v not_o have_v make_v such_o a_o inference_n or_o affirm_v that_o the_o protestant_n fear_v this_o judgement_n but_o rather_o will_v have_v conclude_v as_o i_o do_v that_o since_o both_o stand_n upon_o the_o outward_a ministry_n of_o the_o true_a church_n let_v we_o seek_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v find_v it_o church_n the_o duty_n of_o the_o true_a church_n then_o hear_v and_o follow_v her_o doctrine_n teach_v according_a to_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o scripture_n 3_o the_o due_a observation_n whereof_o show_v that_o the_o true_a visible_a church_n be_v to_o repress_v the_o depravation_n of_o heretic_n and_o partly_o to_o inform_v those_o that_o be_v unlearned_a and_o to_o exercise_v even_o the_o obedience_n of_o those_o that_o be_v learned_a and_o by_o the_o external_a ministry_n of_o teach_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v to_o give_v direction_n and_o be_v dutiful_o by_o her_o member_n to_o be_v hear_v and_o follow_v which_o assertion_n i_o find_v not_o to_o make_v either_o for_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n or_o of_o engl._n or_o any_o other_o particular_a church_n till_o it_o be_v prove_v which_o of_o they_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a ancient_n and_o primitive_a apostolic_a church_n teach_v the_o sound_a doctrine_n of_o the_o first_o pure_a and_o untainted_a age_n whereof_o i_o be_o to_o speak_v in_o the_o chapter_n follow_v chap._n viii_o contain_v a_o fundamental_a observation_n how_o that_o consormity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n may_v be_v a_o good_a mean_n in_o these_o latter_a age_n to_o know_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ._n after_o that_o i_o have_v thus_o discover_v both_o the_o most_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v the_o canonical_a and_o true_a scripture_n and_o the_o most_o ordinary_a external_a mean_n to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n to_o be_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o true_a church_n church_n antiquity_n a_o good_a inducement_n to_o the_o true_a church_n i_o can_v not_o yet_o give_v sufficient_a contentment_n to_o my_o understanding_n until_o such_o time_n as_o i_o have_v find_v out_o also_o
be_v in_o i_o as_o the_o apostle_n prescribe_v have_v i_o say_v be_v make_v partaker_n of_o this_o benefit_n only_o through_o god_n work_v in_o my_o soul_n as_o i_o can_v do_v no_o less_o in_o the_o duty_n of_o gratitude_n than_o to_o manifest_v the_o same_o unto_o you_o so_o must_v it_o be_v a_o part_n of_o my_o care_n not_o only_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o myself_o but_o to_o be_v a_o occasion_n that_o other_o may_v partake_v of_o the_o like_a blessing_n with_o i_o who_o live_v blind_v with_o the_o same_o veil_n of_o error_n and_o heretical_a invention_n as_o i_o do_v till_o it_o please_v god_n to_o draw_v away_o that_o dark_a curtain_n of_o implicit_a faith_n viz._n that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n from_o my_o eye_n and_o to_o give_v i_o grace_v clear_o to_o behold_v the_o explicit_a novelty_n strong_o and_o cunning_o maintain_v therein_o which_o enforce_v i_o now_o to_o make_v the_o confession_n of_o my_o faith_n say_v no_o long_o the_o creed_n of_o rome_n make_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o record_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n but_o with_o his_o majesty_n 35._o praemonit_fw-la fol_z 35._o i_o be_o such_o a_o catholic_a christian_n as_o believe_v the_o three_o creed_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o of_o athanasius_n etc._n etc._n i_o also_o acknowledge_v for_o orthodox_n all_o those_o other_o form_n of_o creed_n that_o either_o be_v devise_v by_o counsel_n or_o particular_a father_n against_o such_o particular_a heresy_n as_o most_o reign_v in_o their_o time_n i_o reverence_n and_o admit_v the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n as_o catholic_a and_o orthodox_n etc._n etc._n i_o also_o concern_v the_o father_n hold_v as_o his_o majesty_n do_v the_o scripture_n also_o i_o believe_v as_o for_o the_o apocrypha_n i_o hold_v they_o in_o the_o same_o account_n that_o the_o ancient_n do_v etc._n etc._n and_o so_o of_o the_o other_o point_n of_o doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o most_o judicious_a profession_n which_o his_o highness_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v do_v i_o believe_v 4_o here_o at_o i_o know_v gentle_a reader_n thou_o may_v much_o marvel_v conversion_n god_n the_o cause_n of_o my_o conversion_n that_o i_o who_o be_v bear_v of_o such_o parent_n as_o profess_v the_o roman_a faith_n and_o lose_v much_o of_o their_o temporal_a estate_n diverse_a year_n together_o for_o the_o same_o who_o have_v be_v train_v up_o therein_o from_o my_o youth_n who_o have_v practise_v the_o function_n of_o my_o priesthood_n these_o nine_o year_n according_a to_o the_o fashion_n of_o that_o church_n who_o have_v be_v ready_a and_o prompt_a in_o minister_a their_o sacrament_n in_o preach_v their_o doctrine_n in_o offer_v their_o sacrifice_n who_o dedicate_v my_o life_n and_o labour_n most_o willing_o for_o the_o advancement_n of_o that_o faith_n who_o be_o ally_v to_o diverse_a of_o the_o better_a sort_n of_o england_n profess_v that_o religion_n who_o be_v befriend_v of_o many_o and_o to_o my_o knowledge_n hate_v of_o none_o shall_v quit_v alliance_n with_o that_o church_n and_o take_v acquaintance_n with_o this_o of_o england_n where_o i_o have_v scarce_o any_o acquaintance_n at_o all_o what_o shall_v cause_v such_o a_o change_n i_o answer_v thou_o gentle_a reader_n that_o my_o desire_n be_v thou_o shall_v be_v right_o inform_v &_o assure_v thereof_o &_o then_o say_v with_o i_o as_o i_o say_v most_o sincere_o with_o inexplicable_a joy_n to_o my_o own_o soul_n this_o be_v a_o change_n of_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o high_a 11._o psal_n 76._o vers_fw-la 11._o and_o for_o this_o cause_n do_v i_o here_o present_a unto_o you_o the_o observation_n both_o of_o doctrine_n &_o manner_n which_o have_v cause_v this_o my_o unexpected_a change_n and_o heavenly_a metamorphosis_n not_o engender_v by_o any_o waver_a disposition_n or_o inordinate_a passion_n too_o often_o see_v in_o trouble_n some_o time_n but_o begin_v and_o effect_v with_o mature_a and_o ripe_a deliberation_n reason_n and_o knowledge_n most_o orderly_o draw_v the_o chariot_n of_o my_o will_n and_o affection_n unto_o the_o love_n of_o truth_n and_o dislike_n of_o falsehood_n and_o therefore_o a_o work_n as_o i_o hope_v wrought_v by_o the_o only_a strong_a hand_n of_o god_n long_o invite_v and_o lead_v my_o soul_n hereunto_o and_o often_o display_v the_o bright_a beam_n of_o his_o extraordinary_a grace_n most_o efficacious_o enforce_v i_o thereunto_o after_o many_o great_a conflict_n and_o combat_n within_o myself_o in_o which_o conversion_n of_o i_o though_o some_o rejoice_v yet_o other_o out_o of_o rash_a judgement_n and_o indiscreet_a passion_n and_o their_o implacable_a hatred_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n join_v with_o extreme_a ignorance_n and_o that_o by_o the_o deceitful_a ground_n of_o their_o implicit_a faith_n and_o belief_n of_o whatsoever_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v not_o consider_v the_o defection_n and_o apostasy_n of_o faith_n foretell_v by_o our_o saviour_n himself_o in_o the_o scripture_n under_o the_o parable_n of_o cockle_n and_o tare_n 25._o matth._n 13._o vers_fw-la 25._o of_o heresy_n and_o novelty_n oversow_v by_o the_o enemy_n man_n after_o the_o sow_v of_o the_o good_a seed_n when_o all_o be_v asleep_a do_v labour_n by_o all_o mean_n to_o obscure_v and_o endarken_v with_o untrue_a report_n and_o most_o unconscionable_a calumniation_n some_o give_v out_o that_o i_o be_v ever_o of_o a_o presumptuous_a spirit_n but_o they_o be_v such_o as_o have_v against_o all_o conscience_n and_o good_a nature_n most_o unnatural_o wrong_v i_o as_o diverse_a of_o the_o best_a papist_n have_v heretofore_o judge_v and_o can_v yet_o witness_v other_o that_o i_o be_o bereave_v of_o my_o right_a wit_n and_o assure_o distract_v in_o mind_n but_o they_o i_o presume_v be_v such_o as_o either_o know_v i_o not_o or_o else_o such_o as_o think_v there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a madness_n than_o to_o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n out_o of_o a_o misconceited_a persuasion_n they_o have_v that_o truth_n be_v on_o their_o side_n whereof_o they_o have_v such_o a_o prejudicate_a opinion_n without_o knowledge_n that_o they_o will_v not_o stick_v to_o say_v that_o shall_v they_o abandon_v the_o roman_a faith_n they_o will_v soon_o become_v turk_n than_o protestant_n other_o that_o i_o be_o draw_v either_o by_o the_o desire_n of_o worldly_a liberty_n and_o preferment_n or_o by_o some_o carnal_a allurement_n to_o perform_v the_o will_n and_o desire_n of_o the_o flesh_n against_o all_o which_o unchristian_a suggestion_n although_o i_o can_v in_o respect_n of_o myself_o with_o the_o buckler_n and_o safeguard_n of_o patience_n and_o silence_n possess_v my_o own_o soul_n in_o quietness_n and_o comfort_n know_v that_o the_o great_a temporal_a happiness_n of_o a_o christian_a be_v the_o testimony_n of_o a_o good_a conscience_n yet_o notwithstanding_o for_o that_o my_o conscience_n give_v evidence_n that_o by_o they_o god_n singular_a mercy_n and_o providence_n most_o clear_o shine_v in_o my_o conversion_n shall_v be_v eclipse_v and_o his_o glory_n most_o injurious_o wrong_v and_o many_o over-credulous_a spirit_n too_o too_o much_o abuse_v i_o can_v do_v no_o less_o in_o my_o thankful_a duty_n for_o so_o singular_a a_o receive_a benefit_n than_o to_o illustrate_v the_o same_o to_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n that_o all_o see_v it_o god_n holy_a name_n may_v be_v glorify_v herein_o and_o other_o that_o walk_v awry_o be_v invite_v and_o edify_v by_o my_o example_n which_o i_o can_v better_o perform_v then_o by_o give_v public_a testimony_n to_o the_o world_n in_o write_v of_o the_o true_a occasion_n mean_n and_o motive_n of_o my_o conversion_n as_o by_o these_o my_o doctrinal_a and_o moral_a observation_n i_o trust_v through_o god_n grace_n i_o shall_v perform_v 5_o the_o truth_n be_v and_o i_o can_v deny_v it_o conversion_n the_o difficulty_n of_o my_o conversion_n that_o this_o my_o change_n and_o conversion_n from_o the_o faith_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o england_n be_v even_o beset_v with_o manifold_a difficulty_n opposition_n bar_n and_o obstacle_n long_o hinder_v &_o delay_v this_o work_n which_o consist_v of_o the_o inward_a act_n of_o resolution_n in_o the_o soul_n strengthen_v by_o god_n especial_a grace_n with_o comfort_n 7._o tho._n aq._n 12._o q._n cxiij_o art_n 7._o at_o length_n be_v perform_v in_o a_o instant_n for_o first_o it_o be_v well_o know_v i_o be_v arm_v against_o it_o by_o my_o continual_a education_n and_o example_n of_o my_o parent_n in_o the_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n which_o i_o be_v persuade_v to_o have_v be_v catholic_a let_v education_n one_o let_v even_o from_o my_o first_o year_n of_o understanding_n for_o common_a experience_n show_v that_o of_o the_o poet_n to_o be_v most_o true_a quo_fw-la semel_fw-la est_fw-la
any_o displeasure_n of_o the_o state_n then_o can_v i_o now_o do_v no_o less_o in_o satisfaction_n to_o god_n and_o the_o world_n be_v now_o enlighten_v with_o truth_n itself_o than_o to_o show_v a_o more_o earnest_a zeal_n &_o burn_a charity_n towards_o your_o conversion_n from_o the_o former_a error_n labour_v to_o reduce_v you_o unto_o the_o same_o light_n of_o catholic_a truth_n whereto_o i_o myself_o be_o call_v that_o whereas_o i_o have_v former_o wrong_v the_o soul_n of_o many_o in_o the_o time_n of_o my_o blindness_n by_o diverse_a labour_n and_o exhortation_n and_o the_o wrong_a ministration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n but_o under_o one_o form_n unto_o you_o quite_o contrary_a to_o christ_n institution_n and_o commandment_n rejoice_v therein_o i_o may_v now_o in_o the_o time_n of_o better_a knowledge_n endeavour_n to_o make_v part_n of_o amends_n by_o use_v any_o possible_a pain_n to_o inform_v you_o right_o of_o the_o same_o way_n which_o it_o have_v please_v god_n to_o call_v i_o unto_o cause_n the_o true_a motive_n of_o my_o conversion_n the_o three_o cause_n three_o that_o you_o may_v have_v true_a notice_n that_o not_o any_o temporal_a motive_n have_v wrought_v this_o change_n in_o i_o not_o persuasion_n of_o any_o worldly_a friend_n for_o till_o my_o conversion_n i_o converse_v with_o none_o ordinary_o but_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a profession_n not_o natural_a affection_n to_o kindred_n because_o my_o near_a and_o dear_a friend_n of_o blood_n be_v of_o that_o faith_n and_o gentleman_n of_o worshipful_a quality_n not_o want_v for_o my_o own_o mean_n have_v be_v able_a content_o to_o maintain_v i_o with_o such_o help_n as_o the_o practice_n of_o my_o function_n draw_v unto_o i_o beside_o the_o love_n and_o willingness_n of_o many_o good_a friend_n most_o ready_a to_o assist_v i_o in_o all_o my_o need_n not_o inordinate_a affection_n to_o carnal_a delight_n unapprovable_a by_o god_n word_n for_o i_o thank_v god_n i_o be_o free_a from_o all_o such_o or_o any_o other_o as_o far_o as_o i_o know_v who_o be_o best_a able_a to_o examine_v my_o own_o conscience_n in_o this_o behalf_n 8_o accept_v therefore_o i_o beseech_v you_o dear_a recusant_n unto_o who_o i_o wish_v as_o much_o good_a as_o to_o i_o own_o soul_n recusant_n to_o recusant_n and_o all_o happiness_n in_o the_o most_o tender_a bowel_n of_o christ_n jesus_n these_o my_o ensue_a observation_n ground_v upon_o the_o sacred_a letter_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n earnest_o pray_v to_o god_n they_o may_v bear_v the_o same_o sway_n with_o your_o understanding_n and_o will_n as_o they_o have_v with_o i_o for_o your_o inducement_n to_o a_o perfect_a conversion_n of_o your_o soul_n according_a to_o my_o example_n unto_o the_o true_a worship_n of_o god_n in_o the_o true_a catholic_a english_a church_n who_o doctrine_n you_o may_v find_v agreeable_a to_o the_o true_a ground_n of_o christianity_n and_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o you_o may_v most_o clear_o perceive_v if_o you_o will_v vouchsafe_v without_o all_o passion_n and_o perverse_a affection_n to_o peruse_v my_o observation_n which_o as_o they_o have_v be_v powerful_a to_o work_v my_o true_a conversion_n so_o from_o the_o true_a affection_n of_o my_o soul_n i_o wish_v they_o may_v be_v as_o profitable_a unto_o you_o for_o your_o reduction_n unto_o the_o same_o most_o true_a catholic_a faith_n with_o abundance_n of_o god_n blessing_n to_o your_o soul_n with_o perfect_a allegiance_n to_o your_o lawful_a sovereign_n with_o edification_n to_o his_o church_n with_o true_a contentment_n and_o peace_n to_o your_o heart_n with_o quietness_n to_o your_o present_a life_n and_o everlasting_a glory_n to_o your_o life_n to_o come_v through_o the_o grace_n and_o mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n chap._n ii_o contain_v a_o observation_n of_o god_n providence_n in_o minister_a occasion_n of_o time_n place_n and_o person_n concur_v to_o my_o conversion_n such_o be_v the_o merciful_a providence_n of_o almighty_a god_n which_o reach_v from_o one_o end_n to_o another_o mighty_o and_o sweet_o order_v all_o thing_n 1._o god_n providence_n order_v all_o thing_n sap._n 8._o vers_fw-la 1._o that_o as_o he_o dispose_v all_o humane_a action_n to_o happen_v in_o fit_a time_n so_o do_v he_o suffer_v fit_a accident_n and_o occasion_n to_o fall_v out_o that_o the_o work_n which_o he_o intend_v by_o man_n may_v have_v success_n answerable_a to_o his_o will_n and_o designment_n qui_fw-la mundum_fw-la per_fw-la seipsum_fw-la regit_fw-la medium_n greg._n lib._n 14._o mor._n cap._n 26._o ante_fw-la medium_n quem_fw-la per_fw-la seipsum_fw-la condidit_fw-la who_o as_o gregory_n say_v rule_v the_o world_n by_o himself_o which_o by_o himself_o he_o create_v for_o his_o understanding_n and_o will_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o thing_n as_o the_o great_a doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v corpore_fw-la tho._n aq._n part_n 1._o q._n 19_o in_o corpore_fw-la qui_fw-la operatur_fw-la omne_fw-la secundum_fw-la consilium_fw-la voluntatis_fw-la suae_fw-la who_o work_v all_o thing_n according_a to_o the_o purpose_n of_o his_o will_n as_o saint_n paul_n affirm_v 11._o ephes_n 1._o vers_fw-la 11._o and_o his_o will_n be_v know_v as_o the_o schoolman_n teach_v by_o diverse_a sign_n as_o by_o prohibition_n permission_n of_o evil_a 19_o thom._n aqu._n part_n 1._o q._n 19_o operation_n of_o good_a and_o by_o precept_n etc._n etc._n saint_n augustine_n also_o say_v 3._o august_n enchirid_a c._n 29._o in_o fine_a tom._n 3._o nihil_fw-la fit_a nisi_fw-la omnipotens_fw-la fieri_fw-la velit_fw-la vel_fw-la sinendo_fw-la ut_fw-la fiat_fw-la vel_fw-la faciendo_fw-la nothing_o be_v do_v but_o what_o the_o almighty_a will_v have_v do_v either_o by_o suffer_v it_o to_o be_v do_v or_o by_o do_v it_o it_o follow_v by_o necessary_a consequence_n that_o all_o occasion_n help_n and_o benefit_n of_o his_o creature_n subordinate_o concur_v to_o every_o act_n of_o his_o will_n proceed_v from_o his_o providence_n and_o wisdom_n 2_o hence_o providence_n my_o bond_n of_o gratitude_n to_o god_n providence_n gentle_a reader_n i_o observe_v in_o how_o strong_a band_n of_o dutiful_a thankfulness_n i_o stand_v oblige_v unto_o god_n for_o minister_a unto_o i_o at_o several_a time_n and_o in_o several_a place_n and_o upon_o different_a occurrence_n such_o occasion_n and_o mean_n to_o search_v and_o examine_v the_o controversy_n of_o religion_n betwixt_o the_o roman_a and_o english_a church_n that_o while_o by_o my_o study_n and_o labour_v my_o purpose_n &_o designment_n be_v to_o draw_v other_o into_o the_o net_n of_o rome_n i_o myself_o be_v lead_v into_o the_o sheepfold_a whereof_o christ_n in_o heaven_n be_v the_o chief_a pastor_n wherein_o i_o see_v true_o verify_v that_o of_o king_n david_n 2._o psal_n 13._o vers_fw-la 2._o dominus_fw-la de_fw-la coelo_fw-la prospexit_fw-la ut_fw-la videat_fw-la si_fw-la est_fw-la intelligens_fw-la aut_fw-la requirens_fw-la deum_fw-la the_o lord_n look_v down_o from_o heaven_n upon_o the_o child_n of_o man_n to_o see_v if_o there_o be_v any_o that_o do_v understand_v and_o seek_v god_n who_o never_o cease_v to_o minister_v occasion_n and_o mean_n concur_v to_o the_o good_a of_o his_o servant_n 1._o matth._n 11._o ver_fw-la 1._o who_o number_v all_o the_o hair_n of_o their_o head_n in_o his_o knowledge_n and_o suffer_v not_o any_o thing_n to_o happen_v without_o his_o providence_n unto_o they_o for_o so_o we_o find_v that_o abraham_n exile_n concur_v to_o his_o great_a good_a 18_o gen._n 11._o vers_fw-la 1._o gen._n 22._o vers_fw-la 29._o gen_n 37._o vers_fw-la 18_o the_o commandment_n of_o isaack_n sacrifice_n give_v occasion_n to_o approve_v abraham_n faith_n the_o fell_n of_o joseph_n by_o his_o brethren_n and_o his_o imprisonment_n be_v occasion_n concur_v to_o his_o great_a glory_n and_o to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o virtue_n 3._o exod._n 2._o vers_fw-la 3._o and_o god_n more_o singular_a providence_n towards_o he_o the_o lay_n of_o moses_n by_o the_o brink_n of_o the_o river_n 6._o 1._o reg._n 17._o vers_fw-la 6._o the_o often_o delivery_n of_o david_n from_o saul_n fury_n the_o feed_n of_o elias_n with_o bread_n and_o flesh_n by_o raven_n the_o preservation_n of_o daniel_n in_o the_o den_n of_o lion_n 3.20.24_o dan._n 6._o vers_fw-la 22._o dan._n 3.20.24_o the_o protection_n of_o the_o three_o child_n in_o the_o babylonian_a furnace_n do_v most_o clear_o show_v how_o by_o this_o providence_n of_o god_n all_o occasion_n and_o circumstance_n of_o man_n life_n do_v concur_v to_o the_o happiness_n of_o his_o choose_a servant_n and_o therefore_o most_o true_o sing_v the_o psalmist_n 1._o psal_n 90._o vers_fw-la 1._o qui_fw-la habitat_fw-la in_o adiutorio_fw-la altissimi_fw-la in_o protectione_n dei_fw-la coeli_fw-la commorabitur_fw-la he_o that_o dwell_v in_o the_o secret_a place_n of_o the_o most_o high_a shall_v abide_v under_o the_o shadow_n of_o the_o almighty_a
and_o when_o i_o note_v that_o i_o can_v never_o hear_v any_o one_o jesuit_n to_o speak_v reprove_o of_o it_o and_o further_o hear_v some_o very_o rash_o and_o foolish_o to_o cast_v the_o imputation_n of_o invent_v it_o upon_o the_o best_a statesman_n of_o this_o land_n as_o a_o train_n to_o make_v catholic_n the_o more_o odious_a to_o the_o state_n i_o begin_v to_o observe_v a_o custom_n use_v by_o some_o which_o be_v without_o any_o regard_n of_o truth_n or_o knowledge_n to_o speak_v the_o worst_a they_o can_v to_o blemish_v the_o reputation_n of_o their_o adversary_n so_o i_o hear_v a_o certain_a young_a jesuit_n report_n when_o garnet_n be_v in_o the_o tower_n device_n a_o pretty_a device_n that_o day_n and_o night_n oil_n be_v put_v into_o his_o eye_n with_o feather_n and_o other_o mean_v use_v to_o keep_v he_o from_o sleep_n that_o so_o be_v weaken_v both_o in_o body_n and_o mind_n he_o may_v be_v easy_o draw_v to_o confess_v all_o he_o know_v which_o circumstance_n with_o diverse_a other_o belong_v to_o this_o unmatchable_a treason_n though_o they_o make_v i_o not_o then_o abandon_v the_o faith_n and_o belief_n of_o those_o that_o be_v actor_n thereof_o yet_o do_v they_o sow_v such_o seed_n of_o doubtfulness_n and_o care_n in_o i_o to_o be_v sound_a in_o faith_n that_o the_o effect_n and_o fruit_n issue_v from_o they_o of_o doctrine_n concern_v disallegeance_n to_o the_o king_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o pope_n breve_n have_v much_o avert_v i_o since_o as_o namely_o the_o doctrine_n of_o bellarmine_n teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o temporal_a prince_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la but_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la retract_v the_o former_a opinion_n 48._o bellarmin_n count_n barclaium_n tract_n de_fw-fr potest_fw-la summi_fw-la pontificis_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la ca._n 3._o fol._n 48._o extant_a in_o his_o controversy_n these_o many_o year_n now_o hold_v the_o quite_o contrary_a notwith_o stand_v it_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n that_o as_o well_o the_o clergy_n as_o the_o laity_n be_v subject_a to_o king_n and_o prince_n because_o obedience_n to_o king_n whether_o they_o be_v good_a or_o wayward_a in_o scripture_n be_v commend_v unto_o all_o 2.18_o 1._o petri_n 2.18_o behold_v here_o the_o second_o occasion_n 7_o a_o three_o occasion_n concur_v to_o my_o conversion_n other_o conference_n with_o other_o be_v conference_n with_o other_o into_o who_o company_n by_o chance_n i_o have_v fall_v as_o once_o with_o a_o learned_a knight_n who_o not_o know_v i_o to_o be_v a_o priest_n confer_v with_o i_o as_o with_o a_o professor_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n who_o wind_v i_o into_o such_o a_o circle_n about_o the_o scripture_n and_o the_o church_n that_o i_o can_v never_o wind_v myself_o out_o of_o it_o till_o i_o wind_v myself_o out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o stay_v myself_o upon_o a_o ground_n not_o admit_v there_o which_o be_v that_o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o most_o sufficient_a and_o certain_a rule_n of_o faith_n that_o christian_n have_v which_o if_o you_o take_v away_o all_o religion_n all_o faith_n all_o knowledge_n of_o god_n fall_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o another_o time_n i_o fall_v into_o dispute_n with_o a_o grave_n ancient_a justice_n of_o peace_n who_o press_v i_o so_o far_o that_o i_o promise_v to_o send_v he_o some_o principal_a doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o sufficient_o prove_v by_o scripture_n by_o father_n and_o by_o natural_a reason_n that_o if_o they_o can_v be_v answer_v i_o will_v subscribe_v to_o his_o church_n but_o in_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o proof_n of_o those_o very_a point_n bring_v in_o by_o bellarmine_n and_o due_a consideration_n of_o they_o i_o find_v they_o to_o be_v of_o very_o little_a force_n to_o prove_v the_o verity_n intend_v as_o hereafter_o shall_v appear_v concern_v the_o mass_n transubstantiation_n the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_a to_o lay_v people_n pardon_n auricular_a confession_n and_o other_o whereupon_o i_o have_v prove_v since_o as_o good_a as_o my_o promise_n in_o join_v myself_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 8_o a_o four_o occasion_n of_o examine_v more_o careful_o the_o controversy_n have_v be_v ground_v upon_o his_o majesty_n title_n book_n his_o majesty_n book_n in_o his_o premonition_n to_o christian_a prince_n still_v himself_o the_o defendor_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n which_o seem_v so_o strange_a unto_o i_o at_o the_o first_o consider_v that_o no_o church_n more_o challenge_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_a than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o i_o begin_v to_o consider_v with_o myself_o whether_o i_o can_v find_v any_o capital_a point_n of_o faith_n teach_v now_o by_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v not_o teach_v and_o profess_v by_o the_o ancient_a and_o primitive_a church_n and_o now_o impugn_a by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o find_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o depose_v prince_n and_o king_n by_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o ancient_a nor_o transubstantiation_n nor_o the_o mass_n as_o now_o it_o be_v practise_v nor_o the_o sacrament_n as_o now_o it_o be_v minister_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n nor_o pardon_n nor_o prohibition_n of_o priest_n marriage_n i_o have_v since_o be_v enforce_v to_o conclude_v that_o certain_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n profess_v not_o in_o those_o point_v the_o true_a christian_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n further_o as_o i_o note_v the_o profession_n his_o majesty_n make_v in_o his_o premonitorie_a epistle_n to_o prince_n 35_o praemonit_fw-la full_a 35_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v such_o a_o christian_a catholic_a as_n believe_v the_o three_o creed_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n that_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o that_o of_o athanasius_n admit_v the_o first_o four_o general_a counsel_n as_o catholic_a and_o orthodox_n the_o joint_a consent_n of_o father_n in_o the_o primitive_a age_n the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n i_o can_v not_o but_o conceive_v at_o last_o that_o his_o majesty_n go_v upon_o the_o strong_a foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n that_o can_v be_v lay_v to_o avoid_v the_o danger_n of_o new_a doctrine_n which_o observation_n do_v much_o facilitate_v my_o search_n and_o scrutiny_n into_o the_o true_a ground_n and_o reason_n of_o faith_n beside_o many_o other_o occasion_n of_o private_a conference_n with_o diverse_a particular_a person_n who_o think_v themselves_o much_o tempt_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n because_o they_o can_v hardly_o believe_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v or_o at_o least_o not_o without_o great_a difficulty_n whereby_o you_o may_v see_v courteous_a reader_n the_o providence_n of_o god_n work_v in_o i_o by_o degree_n towards_o my_o conversion_n afford_v i_o the_o occasion_n and_o mean_n first_o of_o search_v and_o examine_v which_o bring_v i_o at_o length_n to_o the_o motive_n of_o resolve_v as_o hereafter_o you_o shall_v understand_v more_o at_o large_a when_o i_o shall_v first_o have_v lay_v down_o unto_o you_o certain_a fundamental_a observation_n as_o ground_n on_o which_o the_o true_a christian_a catholic_a faith_n must_v of_o necessity_n stand_v and_o the_o whole_a frame_n thereof_o be_v sure_o build_v chap._n iii_o contain_v the_o first_o fundamental_a observation_n of_o the_o end_n of_o man_n and_o his_o chief_a happiness_n after_o the_o manifestation_n of_o the_o occasion_n which_o by_o god_n providence_n occur_v to_o forward_a this_o work_n of_o my_o conversion_n end_n the_o chief_a business_n of_o man_n be_v to_o seek_v his_o end_n the_o next_o thing_n to_o be_v speak_v of_o be_v to_o acquaint_v thou_o dear_a christian_a reader_n with_o those_o fundamental_a observation_n which_o make_v further_a way_n to_o the_o complete_a perfection_n thereof_o the_o first_o of_o which_o be_v of_o that_o nature_n that_o i_o assure_v myself_o no_o man_n who_o have_v care_n of_o his_o soul_n and_o salvation_n can_v choose_v but_o allow_v for_o i_o assure_v myself_o that_o if_o i_o go_v upon_o such_o sure_a foundation_n and_o principle_n as_o religion_n ought_v to_o stand_v upon_o i_o can_v neither_o stay_v in_o error_n nor_o fall_v into_o any_o hence_o i_o be_v move_v to_o resolve_v most_o constant_o that_o the_o most_o immovable_a foundation_n that_o all_o my_o sp_z ritual_a building_n shall_v stand_v on_o shall_v be_v a_o frequent_a consideration_n that_o the_o chief_a and_o most_o principal_a affair_n and_o business_n of_o great_a importance_n in_o this_o world_n wherein_o it_o be_v my_o duty_n to_o employ_v my_o endeavour_n ought_v to_o be_v the_o salvation_n of_o my_o soul_n and_o my_o future_a happiness_n in_o the_o life_n to_o come_v since_o to_o this_o end_n god_n create_v i_o to_o his_o similitude_n and_o likeness_n redeem_v i_o with_o the_o most_o precious_a blood_n of_o his_o most_o
learned_a doctor_n who_o they_o call_v the_o angelical_a doctor_n say_v 6._o tho._n aqu._n lec_fw-la in_o 1._o tim._n 6._o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n be_v call_v canonical_a because_o it_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o understanding_n 4._o 1._o q._n 1._o be_v 4._o and_o again_o our_o faith_n rest_v and_o stay_v itself_o upon_o the_o revelation_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n which_o write_v the_o canonical_a book_n 8._o 1._o q._n 1._o be_v 8._o and_o not_o upon_o revelation_n if_o any_o such_o have_v be_v make_v to_o other_o doctor_n and_o also_o in_o another_o place_n he_o show_v how_o all_o judgement_n of_o truth_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o scripture_n say_v in_o argue_v it_o proper_o use_v viz._n the_o say_v reveal_v knowledge_n 2._o tho._n 1_o q._n part_n 1._o q._n 1._o be_v 8._o ad_fw-la 2._o whereof_o he_o speak_v of_o necessity_n the_o authority_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n but_o the_o authority_n of_o other_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n as_o it_o be_v argue_v out_o of_o her_o own_o but_o probable_o for_o our_o faith_n do_v rely_v upon_o the_o revelation_n make_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n who_o write_v the_o canonical_a book_n and_o not_o upon_o any_o revelation_n make_v to_o other_o doctor_n therefore_o augustine_n say_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o hierome_n 2._o epi._n 19_o paulo_n post_n princip_n to_o 2._o i_o have_v learned_a to_o give_v this_o honour_n to_o the_o only_a book_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v call_v canonical_a as_o to_o believe_v most_o firm_o that_o not_o one_o author_n of_o they_o have_v err_v in_o writing_n but_o other_o i_o read_v so_o that_o with_o what_o soever_o holiness_n and_o learning_n they_o be_v endue_v as_o not_o therefore_o to_o think_v any_o thing_n a_o truth_n because_o they_o have_v hold_v or_o write_v so_o and_o in_o another_o place_n faith_n do_v cleave_v unto_o all_o the_o article_n of_o faith_n for_o one_o medium_n to_o wit_n for_o the_o first_o truth_n propose_v unto_o we_o in_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n understand_v right_o and_o therefore_o he_o that_o swerve_v from_o this_o mean_a do_v total_o want_v faith_n antoninus_n the_o archbishop_n of_o florence_n write_v express_o 3._o sum._n part_n 3._o tit_n 18._o c._n 3._o ff_n 3._o that_o god_n have_v speak_v but_o once_o and_o that_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o so_o plentiful_o to_o meet_v with_o all_o temptation_n and_o all_o case_n that_o may_v fall_v out_o and_o all_o good_a work_n that_o as_o gregory_n in_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o book_n of_o his_o moral_n expound_v it_o he_o need_v no_o more_o speak_v unto_o we_o concern_v any_o necessary_a matter_n see_v all_o thing_n be_v find_v in_o the_o scripture_n gerson_n a_o great_a man_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n say_v specie_fw-la de_fw-fr come_v sub_fw-la utraque_fw-la specie_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o be_v well_o understand_v no_o authority_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v admit_v against_o it_o durandus_fw-la say_v that_o general_o in_o the_o thing_n that_o touch_v our_o faith_n we_o must_v speak_v to_o that_o which_o the_o scripture_n deliver_v scent_n praef._n in_o scent_n lest_o any_o man_n fall_v into_o that_o which_o the_o apostle_n note_v 1._o cor._n 8._o if_o he_o think_v he_o know_v something_o yet_o the_o know_v nothing_o as_o he_o ought_v to_o know_v for_o the_o manner_n of_o our_o knowledge_n must_v be_v not_o to_o exceed_v the_o measure_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n express_v the_o measure_n of_o faith_n alliaco_fw-it they_fw-mi cardinal_n say_v 3._o 1._o sent._n q._n 1._o be_v 3._o the_o verity_n themselves_o of_o the_o sacted_a canon_n be_v the_o principle_n of_o divinity_n because_o the_o final_a resolution_n of_o theological_a discourse_n be_v make_v into_o they_o and_o original_o from_o they_o be_v draw_v every_o conclusion_n of_o divinity_n conradus_n clingius_n say_v 290._o locor_fw-la l._n 3._o c._n 29._o pag._n 290._o the_o scripture_n be_v the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o truth_n yea_o the_o measure_n and_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n peresius_n the_o divinity_n reader_n at_o barcelona_n in_o spain_n say_v the_o authority_n of_o no_o saint_n be_v of_o infallible_a truth_n 19_o jac._n per._n de_fw-fr ratio_fw-la con_fw-mi li._n 2._o c._n 19_o for_o saint_n augustine_n give_v that_o honour_n only_o to_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n whereupon_o i_o frame_v this_o reason_n that_o only_o be_v the_o infallible_a rule_n which_o be_v of_o infallible_a truth_n but_o the_o scripture_n only_o be_v of_o infallible_a truth_n therefore_o the_o scripture_n only_o be_v the_o infallible_a rule_n 8_o bellarmine_n also_o write_v thus_o 2._o other_o late_a writer_n de_fw-fr verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la li._n 1._o cap._n 2._o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v certain_a and_o know_v for_o if_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a it_o be_v no_o rule_n at_o all_o if_o it_o be_v not_o know_v it_o be_v no_o rule_n to_o we_o but_o nothing_o more_o certain_a nothing_o better_o know_v than_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n contain_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n wherefore_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n most_o certain_a and_o most_o safe_a and_o god_n have_v teach_v we_o by_o corporal_a letter_n which_o we_o may_v see_v and_o read_v what_o he_o will_v have_v we_o believe_v concern_v he_o whence_o i_o gather_v that_o if_o the_o swenckfeldian_o be_v to_o be_v draw_v to_o the_o write_a text_n then_o ought_v those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n also_o be_v recall_v to_o the_o same_o rule_n from_o their_o uncertain_a tradition_n from_o the_o pope_n sole_a definitive_a sentence_n and_o from_o their_o counsel_n not_o teach_v by_o scripture_n if_o nothing_o be_v more_o know_v nothing_o more_o certain_a as_o the_o cardinal_n confess_v than_o the_o scripture_n why_o do_v they_o reject_v they_o from_o be_v the_o rule_n as_o not_o sufficient_a to_o preserve_v from_o error_n not_o know_v enough_o the_o same_o cardinal_n say_v in_o another_o place_n simpliciter_fw-la de_n not_o eccles_n c._n 2._o ff_n respond_v simpliciter_fw-la the_o scripture_n be_v better_a know_v than_o the_o church_n in_o some_o case_n as_o namely_o where_o it_o be_v receive_v and_o speak_v plain_o and_o the_o question_n be_v of_o the_o church_n willavincentius_n confess_v the_o scripture_n and_o they_o alone_o be_v able_a to_o teach_v we_o to_o salvation_n 21._o de_fw-fr ratio_fw-la stud_n theol._n li._n 1._o c._n 31._o pag._n 21._o as_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o timothy_n affirm_v say_v all_o scripture_n be_v inspire_v of_o god_n in_o which_o word_n the_o apostle_n comprehend_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v needful_a to_o the_o salvation_n of_o man_n 16._o comment_fw-fr in_o 2._o tim_n c_o 3_o in_o vers_n 15_o 16._o espenceus_n write_v that_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v needful_a either_o to_o be_v know_v or_o do_v the_o scripture_n teach_v the_o truth_n reprove_v the_o false_a reclaim_v from_o evil_a persuade_v to_o good_a neither_o yet_o do_v they_o make_v a_o man_n good_a in_o some_o sort_n but_o perfect_a yea_o they_o can_v teach_v a_o man_n to_o salvation_n and_o make_v he_o learn_v sufficient_o panormitane_n write_v thus_o one_o faithful_a man_n significa_fw-la part_n 1._o de_fw-fr elect_v pole_v ca._n significa_fw-la though_o private_a be_v more_o to_o be_v believe_v than_o the_o pope_n or_o a_o whole_a council_n if_o he_o have_v better_a reason_n on_o his_o side_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n and_o gerson_n more_o sully_v 5._o de_fw-fr exemp_n doct_v part_n 1._o considera_fw-la 5._o the_o examination_n and_o trial_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v faith_n belong_v not_o only_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n but_o to_o every_o one_o also_o that_o be_v sufficient_o see_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n because_o every_o one_o be_v a_o fit_a judge_n of_o that_o he_o know_v and_o again_o some_o layman_n not_o authorise_v may_v be_v so_o excellent_o learn_v in_o the_o scripture_n that_o his_o assertion_n shall_v be_v more_o to_o be_v credit_v than_o the_o pope_n definitive_a sentence_n for_o the_o gospel_n be_v more_o to_o be_v credit_v than_o the_o pope_n therefore_o if_o such_o a_o lie_v man_n though_o he_o be_v private_a teach_v a_o truth_n contain_v in_o the_o gospel_n and_o the_o pope_n either_o know_v it_o not_o or_o will_v not_o know_v it_o yet_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o his_o judgement_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v costerus_n costerus_n cesterus_n say_v that_o such_o verity_n concern_v our_o faith_n as_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v know_v and_o believe_v of_o all_o man_n be_v plain_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o doctor_n saunders_n say_v 193._o rock_n pag._n 193._o we_o
guic._n hist_o l._n 1._o buy_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o cardinal_n that_o after_o smart_v for_o it_o the_o king_n of_o naples_n signify_v unto_o the_o queen_n his_o wife_n with_o tear_n when_o he_o hear_v of_o his_o election_n that_o there_o be_v a_o pope_n create_v who_o will_v be_v the_o bane_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a commonwealth_n the_o which_o be_v also_o the_o general_a ceonceit_n of_o all_o man_n guicciardine_n say_v he_o be_v a_o serpent_n 6._o lib._n 6._o that_o with_o his_o poison_a infidelity_n horrible_a example_n of_o cruelty_n luxury_n and_o monstrous_a covetousness_n sell_v without_o distinction_n thing_n holy_a and_o profane_a have_v infect_v all_o the_o world_n his_o manner_n and_o custom_n be_v dishonest_a 1._o lib._n 1._o little_a sincerity_n in_o his_o administration_n no_o shame_n in_o his_o face_n small_a truth_n in_o his_o word_n little_a faith_n in_o his_o heart_n and_o less_o religion_n in_o his_o opinion_n all_o his_o action_n be_v desile_v with_o unsatiable_a covetousness_n immoderate_a ambition_n and_o barbarous_a cruelty_n he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o former_a pope_n who_o to_o caest_a some_o colour_n over_o their_o infamy_n be_v wont_a to_o call_v they_o their_o nephew_n to_o call_v his_o son_n his_o childen_a 3._o lib._n 3._o and_o for_o such_o to_o express_v they_o to_o the_o world_n the_o bruit_n go_v that_o in_o the_o love_n of_o his_o own_o daughter_n lucretia_n be_v concurrent_a not_o only_o his_o two_o son_n the_o duke_n of_o candie_n and_o the_o cardinal_n of_o valence_n but_o himself_o also_o that_o be_v her_o father_n who_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o be_v choose_v pope_n take_v she_o from_o her_o husband_n and_o marry_v she_o to_o the_o lord_n of_o pesere_n but_o not_o able_a to_o suffer_v her_o husband_n to_o be_v his_o corrival_n he_o dissolve_v that_o marriage_n also_o and_o take_v she_o to_o himself_o by_o virtue_n of_o saint_n peter_n key_n onuph_n lib._n 6._o onuph_n it_o be_v among_o other_o grace_n his_o natural_a custom_n to_o use_v poison_n not_o only_o to_o be_v revenge_v of_o his_o enemy_n but_o also_o to_o despoil_v the_o wealthy_a cardinal_n of_o their_o riches_n and_o this_o he_o spare_v not_o to_o do_v against_o his_o own_o friend_n till_o at_o the_o last_o have_v a_o purpose_n at_o a_o bauquet_n to_o poison_v diverse_a cardinal_n and_o for_o that_o end_n appoint_v his_o cupbearer_n to_o give_v attendance_n with_o the_o wine_n amde_v ready_a for_o the_o nonce_n who_o mistake_v his_o bottle_n give_v the_o poison_a cup_n to_o he_o be_v thus_o himself_o dispatch_v by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n that_o have_v purpose_v to_o murder_v his_o friend_n that_o he_o may_v be_v their_o heir_n 12_o i_o omit_v many_o other_o particular_a fruit_n of_o diverse_a pope_n which_o will_v make_v much_o more_o against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o these_o be_v enough_o for_o the_o application_n to_o dr._n stapletons_n doctrine_n concern_v the_o discovery_n of_o false_a prophet_n unto_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o can_v not_o but_o judge_v the_o teacher_n of_o that_o church_n too_o passionate_a and_o partial_a that_o know_v the_o most_o distasteful_a fruit_n thereof_o not_o only_o in_o their_o head_n the_o pope_n but_o also_o in_o their_o cardinal_n bishop_n and_o even_o in_o their_o religious_a monastery_n to_o have_v be_v so_o bad_a as_o the_o like_a be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o of_o the_o resormed_a church_n will_v notwithstanding_o most_o unjust_o charge_v the_o minister_n of_o god_n word_n and_o teacher_n of_o reformation_n to_o abound_v in_o such_o fruit_n insomuch_o that_o i_o can_v not_o but_o admire_v the_o impudency_n of_o master_n doctor_n stapleton_n speak_v against_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n say_v the_o devil_n seem_v to_o have_v receive_v power_n from_o god_n by_o his_o minister_n 2._o bonif._n mor._n dom._n 7._o post_fw-la pent._n loc_fw-la 2._o the_o heretic_n of_o our_o time_n to_o produce_v most_o barbarous_a and_o horrible_a fruit_n and_o to_o make_v huge_a slaughter_n in_o the_o church_n and_o according_a to_o his_o pleasure_n and_o malice_n to_o vex_v trouble_n and_o destroy_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n as_o well_o in_o the_o whole_a worship_n and_o sacrament_n of_o religion_n as_o also_o in_o all_o the_o authority_n and_o power_n it_o have_v upon_o earth_n whereas_o in_o truth_n mature_a judgement_n of_o the_o premise_a fruit_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o concern_v doctrine_n and_o manner_n will_v discover_v his_o rash_a assertion_n to_o be_v vertify_v of_o himself_o and_o his_o own_o roman_a church_n teach_v many_o novelty_n and_o abound_v in_o all_o kind_n of_o wickedness_n as_o man_n of_o learning_n and_o experience_n well_o know_v and_o therefore_o his_o enumeration_n of_o 74_o wicked_a fruit_n in_o the_o teacher_n of_o reformation_n may_v fitly_o be_v apply_v in_o part_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o reform_a church_n have_v learn_v to_o forgive_v not_o only_o 74_o calumniation_n and_o injurious_a reproach_n but_o even_o 77_o and_o that_o 77_o time_n of_o their_o offend_a neighbour_n will_v not_o be_v so_o uncharitable_a as_o not_o to_o pardon_v they_o but_o also_o most_o earnest_o out_o of_o true_a charity_n pray_v for_o their_o conversion_n as_o christ_n do_v for_o the_o jew_n say_v ignosce_fw-la eye_n domine_fw-la quia_fw-la nesciunt_fw-la quid_fw-la faciunt_fw-la pardon_v they_o o_o lord_n because_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v hence_o courteous_a reader_n since_o i_o follow_v but_o the_o council_n in_o the_o search_n of_o truth_n which_o christ_n by_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o romanist_n themselves_o give_v to_o all_o in_o judge_a teacher_n by_o their_o fruit_n and_o hereby_o be_v move_v to_o a_o alienation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o hope_v that_o in_o conscience_n even_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o man_n i_o be_o excusable_a for_o my_o incorporation_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n since_o it_o be_v ground_v upon_o such_o a_o place_n of_o scripture_n as_o christ_n himself_o deliver_v and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n allow_v as_o a_o direction_n by_o which_o man_n may_v discern_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o teacher_n esteem_v not_o therefore_o slight_a lie_n of_o this_o inducement_n but_o weigh_v it_o serious_o as_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o great_a importance_n to_o produce_v in_o the_o soul_n of_o christian_n that_o true_a detestation_n and_o hatred_n of_o the_o roman_a apostasy_n as_o the_o enormity_n and_o foul_a deformity_n thereof_o varnish_v over_o with_o lie_n and_o hipocrisy_n do_v require_v chap._n xiii_o contain_v a_o observation_n about_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n which_o be_v account_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o chief_a act_n of_o religion_n which_o can_v be_v do_v to_o god_n as_o that_o object_n which_o be_v most_o frequent_o present_v to_o a_o man_n eye_n invention_n the_o sacrificie_fw-la of_o the_o mass_n ground_v upon_o man_n invention_n be_v also_o most_o frequent_a in_o his_o memory_n and_o take_v the_o deep_a impression_n even_o so_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v a_o action_n which_o in_o the_o papacy_n as_o a_o priest_n i_o do_v daily_o perform_v with_o more_o serious_a preparation_n and_o intensive_a affection_n than_o any_o thing_n else_o whatsoever_o because_o i_o hold_v it_o the_o most_o please_a action_n i_o can_v do_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o god_n to_o the_o good_a of_o his_o church_n and_o for_o the_o benefit_n of_o myself_o and_o other_o therefore_o among_o all_o the_o erroneous_a doctrine_n which_o i_o discover_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o abuse_n thereof_o do_v most_o often_o offer_v itself_o to_o my_o mind_n and_o with_o great_a impression_n lay_v open_a unto_o i_o the_o foulness_n of_o my_o former_a heresy_n in_o that_o church_n and_o touch_v my_o soul_n with_o the_o deep_a stroke_n of_o repentance_n above_o all_o other_o especial_o when_o i_o consider_v the_o most_o detestable_a idolatry_n commit_v therein_o not_o only_o by_o myself_o but_o by_o the_o assistant_n in_o adore_v visible_a element_n for_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n and_o that_o with_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o worship_n as_o be_v only_o due_a to_o god_n himself_o and_o in_o be_v too_o credulous_a to_o that_o erroneous_a doctrine_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 3_o sess_n 6._o c._n 2._o can_n 3_o that_o if_o any_o man_n shall_v say_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v only_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o praise_n and_o thanksgiving_n or_o a_o bare_a commemoration_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n perform_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o a_o propitiatory_a sacrifice_n or_o that_o it_o do_v not_o profit_v he_o alone_o that_o receive_v it_o and_o that_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v
hold_v that_o all_o man_n beside_o christ_n alone_o derive_v from_o adam_n do_v contract_n original_a sin_n from_o adam_n now_o if_o this_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o all_o have_v contract_v sin_n from_o adam_n shall_v it_o not_o be_v against_o faith_n to_o hold_v that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n do_v not_o contract_v sin_n from_o adam_n what_o do_v she_o not_o deseend_n from_o adam_n by_o the_o line_n of_o corporal_a generation_n or_o be_v there_o any_o scripture_n or_o reuciation_n to_o the_o contrary_a be_v there_o any_o exemption_n of_o this_o virgin_n no_o curtaine_o nay_o i_o dare_v confident_o affirm_v that_o it_o will_v have_v be_v a_o great_a discomfort_n to_o this_o holy_a virgin_n not_o to_o have_v be_v partaker_n of_o that_o sit_fw-mi redemption_n by_o christ_n which_o other_o be_v partaker_n of_o if_o she_o be_v not_o partaker_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o redemption_n why_o do_v she_o say_v 47._o 1._o luc._n 47._o magnificat_fw-la anima_fw-la mea_fw-la dom_fw-la et_fw-la exultavit_fw-la spiritus_fw-la m●us_fw-la in_o deo_fw-la salutarimeo_fw-la my_o soul_n do_v magnisie_n the_o lord_n and_o my_o spirit_n do_v rejoice_v in_o god_n my_o sanior_fw-la how_o can_v it_o be_v true_a that_o god_n be_v her_o saviour_n unless_o it_o be_v by_o christ_n of_o who_o we_o read_v in_o s._n matthew_n ipse_fw-la saiwm_fw-la faciet_fw-la populum_fw-la suum_fw-la à_fw-la peccatis_fw-la eorum_fw-la 21._o 1._o matth._n 21._o he_o shall_v sane_a his_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n if_o she_o have_v only_o be_v preserve_v from_o original_a sin_n by_o extraordinary_a privilege_n she_o will_v have_v say_v that_o she_o do_v rejoice_v in_o god_n her_o preserver_n therefore_o in_o that_o she_o say_v she_o rejoice_v in_o god_n her_o saviour_n according_a to_o the_o phrase_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v right_o well_o infer_v that_o she_o acknowledge_v herself_o save_v from_o original_a sin_n by_o christ_n who_o she_o have_v thus_o conceive_v by_o the_o help_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n without_o the_o seed_n of_o man_n to_o save_v people_n from_o their_o sin_n &_o so_o consequent_o herself_o call_v ●im_a her_o saviour_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o s._n paul_n say_v 2._o ephes_n 2._o eramus_fw-la omnes_fw-la silij_fw-la irae_fw-la we_o be_v all_o the_o child_n of_o wrath_n and_o siunus_fw-la pro_fw-la omnibus_fw-la mortuus_fw-la est_fw-la if_o one_o die_v for_o all_o ergo_fw-la omnes_fw-la mortui_fw-la sunt_fw-la 15._o 1._o cor._n 2._o v._n 14._o &_o 15._o therefore_o all_o die_v et_fw-la pro_fw-la omnibus_fw-la mortuus_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la and_o christ_n die_v for_o all_o it_o necessary_o follow_v that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v also_o a_o child_n of_o wrath_n by_o original_a sin_n through_o adam_n and_o that_o christ_n who_o do_v for_o all_o die_v also_o for_o she_o or_o else_o how_o can_v it_o be_v verify_v that_o he_o die_v for_o all_o if_o my_o illation_n be_v not_o to_o be_v credit_v herein_o thomas_n of_o aquin_n may_v be_v demand_v his_o opinion_n and_o he_o will_v be_v find_v to_o agree_v with_o i_o herein_o corp_n tho._n 3._o p.q._n 27._o art_n 2._o in_o corp_n his_o word_n be_v these_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n can_v be_v understand_v before_o give_v of_o soul_n or_o life_n for_o a_o twofold_a respect_n first_o because_o sanctification_n of_o which_o we_o speak_v be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o cleanse_n from_o original_a sin_n principio_fw-la cap._n 12._o de_fw-fr divi_z nomi_fw-la parum_fw-la à_fw-la principio_fw-la for_o holiness_n be_v perfect_a cleanness_n as_o dionysius_n sayty_n but_o sin_n can_v be_v cleanse_v but_o by_o grace_n whereunto_o the_o reasonable_a creature_n be_v only_o subject_a therefore_o before_o the_o infusion_n of_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v not_o sanctify_v second_o for_o that_o since_o only_o the_o reasonable_a creature_n can_v have_v sin_n before_o the_o infusion_n of_o the_o reasonable_a soul_n the_o fruit_n conceive_v be_v not_o obnoxious_a to_o sin_n and_o therefore_o by_o what_o mean_v soever_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v sanctify_v before_o give_v soul_n or_o life_n she_o shall_v never_o have_v incur_v the_o blot_n of_o original_a sin_n and_o so_o she_o shall_v not_o have_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o redemption_n or_o salvation_n which_o be_v by_o chris_n of_o who_o it_o be_v say_v matth._n 1._o he_o shall_v save_v the_o people_n from_o their_o sin_n but_o this_o be_v inconvenient_a that_o christ_n shall_v not_o be_v the_o saviour_n of_o all_o man_n as_o we_o real_n in_o the_o first_o to_o timothy_n the_o four_o therefore_o it_o rest_v that_o the_o sanctification_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v after_o she_o receive_v soul_n or_o life_n here_o than_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o this_o their_o angelical_a doctor_n hold_v the_o virgin_n marie_n to_o be_v obnoxious_a to_o original_a sin_n because_o the_o sanctification_n he_o speak_v of_o as_o himself_o say_v be_v a_o cleanse_n from_o original_a sin_n as_o also_o for_o that_o he_o show_v that_o it_o will_v have_v be_v inconvenient_a for_o she_o not_o to_o have_v incur_v the_o blot_n of_o original_a sin_n because_o than_o she_o shall_v not_o have_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o redemption_n so_o that_o i_o think_v it_o be_v hereby_o plain_a by_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o thomas_n aquinas_n understanding_n that_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n and_o therefore_o this_o doctrine_n be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n 3._o hence_o i_o observe_v far_o 101._o the_o disagreement_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o virgin_n mary_fw-mi conception_n ban._n part_n 1._o pag._n 75._o de_fw-fr consecratione_fw-la d._n 4._o firmissime_fw-la nu_fw-la 12._o pag._n 101._o upon_o more_o serious_a consideration_n of_o the_o doctrine_n hold_v the_o contrary_a how_o much_o the_o late_a divine_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n especial_o the_o jesuite_n do_v swerve_v from_o former_a divine_n who_o teach_v the_o virgin_n marie_n to_o be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n bannes_n acknowledge_v that_o all_o the_o father_n with_o one_o consent_n hold_v the_o virgin_n marie_n to_o be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n and_o turrecremata_fw-la say_v that_o almost_o all_o the_o schoolman_n hold_v the_o virgin_n marie_n have_v original_a sin_n yea_o that_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n among_o the_o famous_a of_o they_o and_o he_o have_v collece_v a_o hundred_o of_o that_o mind_n i_o observe_v a_o notable_a contradiction_n among_o some_o roman_a writer_n in_o this_o point_n cardinal_n bellarmine_n indeed_o come_v near_o the_o truth_n when_o he_o say_v to_o affirm_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v conceive_v in_o original_a sin_n 15._o bellar._n de_fw-fr stat_fw-la peccat_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 15._o be_v not_o against_o faith_n he_o have_v say_v well_o if_o he_o have_v say_v it_o be_v the_o side_n it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o be_v not_o that_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v plain_a by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o god_n as_o i_o have_v show_v yet_o other_o say_v she_o have_v no_o original_a sin_n 2._o almain_n potest_fw-la eccles_n c._n 16._o clicto_n super_fw-la damas_n l._n 3._o c._n 2._o frac._n titl_n io._n 2._o and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n so_o to_o believe_v and_o that_o it_o be_v impiety_n to_o think_v otherwise_o now_o if_o they_o say_v true_a then_o do_v they_o make_v the_o cardinal_n a_o heretic_n when_o in_o the_o second_o conclusion_n he_o affirm_v that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n be_v pious_o think_v to_o have_v be_v conceive_v without_o original_a sin_n by_o the_o singular_a privilege_n of_o god_n be_v that_o thing_n to_o be_v but_o pious_o believe_v which_o be_v a_o point_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o the_o former_a say_v or_o be_v not_o that_o thing_n against_o faith_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o that_o proposition_n which_o they_o say_v be_v a_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o it_o be_v impiety_n to_o think_v otherwise_o but_o in_o very_a truth_n omit_v the_o contradiction_n of_o their_o writing_n about_o this_o doctrine_n if_o we_o look_v but_o into_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o virines_n conception_n which_o they_o keep_v every_o year_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o very_o novel_a in_o respect_n of_o antiquity_n and_o such_o occasion_n thereof_o as_o be_v unfit_a to_o ground_v their_o doctrine_n upon_o contrary_a to_o all_o antiquity_n 4._o 6._o to._n 1._o c._n 4._o tit_n 1._o p._n 6._o anthony_n d'aneroult_n in_o his_o historical_a catechism_n show_v how_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n be_v institute_v which_o he_o recount_v in_o this_o manner_n william_n the_o duke_n of_o normandy_n institute_v a_o apparition_n whereupon_o this_o doctrine_n be_v ground_v and_o the_o feast_n of_o her_o conception_n first_o institute_v a_o man_n fear_v god_n after_o he_o have_v conquer_v england_n and_o reform_v the_o
of_o rome_n fol._n 171._o chap._n 15._o contain_v a_o observation_n of_o the_o pardon_n and_o indulgence_n which_o the_o pope_n annex_v to_o cross_n grain_n and_o medal_n fol._n 180._o chap._n 16._o contain_v a_o observation_n about_o the_o number_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n admit_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n fol._n 189._o chap._n 17._o contain_v a_o observation_n about_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_fw-mi conception_n in_o original_a sin_n fol._n 206._o chap._n 18._o contain_v a_o observation_n of_o the_o honourable_a state_n of_o marriage_n prohibit_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o priest_n who_o by_o god_n law_n may_v lawful_o live_v in_o it_o and_o allow_v to_o those_o who_o by_o god_n law_n can_v not_o live_v together_o without_o incest_n fol._n 214._o chap._n 19_o contain_v the_o conclusion_n to_o the_o reader_n with_o a_o recapitulation_n of_o all_o the_o precedent_a observation_n for_o the_o reader_n profit_n fol._n 213._o doctrinal_a and_o moral_a observation_n concern_v religion_n chap._n i._o contain_v the_o first_o observation_n show_v the_o reason_n and_o occasion_n of_o this_o treatise_n among_o all_o the_o thing_n which_o draw_v man_n into_o admiration_n god_n great_a be_v the_o benefit_n of_o true_a conversion_n because_o it_o manife_v the_o power_n of_o god_n and_o which_o do_v see_v i_o to_o happen_v contrary_a unto_o common_a course_n and_o order_n worthy_o may_v the_o conversion_n of_o soul_n from_o the_o way_n of_o sin_n and_o iniquity_n challenge_v the_o first_o place_n and_o be_v to_o be_v esteem_v as_o the_o great_a for_o this_o be_v the_o most_o excellent_a work_v the_o heaven_n do_v afford_v we_o and_o the_o most_o wonderful_a that_o the_o infinite_a power_n of_o god_n infinite_o powerful_a can_v perform_v this_o the_o prime_a doctor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n most_o clear_o intimate_v 113._o tho._n aquin._n 12._o q._n 113._o say_v maximum_fw-la opus_fw-la dei_fw-la est_fw-la iustificatio_fw-la impij_fw-la the_o justification_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v the_o great_a work_n of_o god_n according_a to_o that_o of_o the_o kingly_a prophet_n miserationes_fw-la eius_fw-la super_fw-la omne_fw-la opera_fw-la eius_fw-la 9_o psal_n 144._o vers_fw-la 9_o his_o mercy_n be_v above_o all_o his_o work_n yea_o and_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o keep_v fresh_a the_o memory_n of_o this_o document_n pray_v to_o god_n yearly_a in_o these_o word_n deus_fw-la qui_fw-la omnipetentiam_fw-la tuam_fw-la parcendo_fw-la &_o miserando_fw-la maxim_n manifestas_fw-la pent._n in_o dom._n 20._o post_fw-la pent._n o_o god_n that_o by_o pardon_n and_o mercy_n chief_o manifeste_v thy_o almighty_a power_n which_o verity_n also_o s._n augustine_n confirm_v say_v upon_o those_o word_n of_o s._n john_n great_a work_n than_o these_o shall_v he_o do_v 9_o joh._n 14._o v._n 12._o august_n tract_n 72._o in_o joh._n post_fw-la med._n tom_n 9_o maius_n opus_fw-la est_fw-la ut_fw-la ex_fw-la impio_fw-la iustus_fw-la fiat_fw-la quam_fw-la creare_fw-la coelum_fw-la &_o terram_fw-la it_o be_v a_o great_a work_n for_o a_o sinner_n to_o be_v make_v righteous_a than_o to_o create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n this_o though_o it_o seem_v a_o paradox_n be_v most_o true_a for_o certain_o albeit_o the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n be_v a_o marvelous_a work_n yet_o the_o justification_n and_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n be_v much_o full_a of_o admiration_n god_n frame_v and_o mould_v the_o world_n almost_o in_o a_o moment_n of_o time_n and_o bring_v forth_o all_o creature_n in_o a_o short_a time_n as_o it_o be_v into_o the_o field_n but_o to_o abolish_v the_o turpitude_n and_o foulness_n of_o only_a one_o original_a sin_n he_o use_v the_o delay_n of_o five_o thousand_o year_n and_o to_o bring_v this_o work_n to_o perfection_n his_o only_a son_n christ_n jesus_n endure_v three_o and_o thirty_o year_n exile_n from_o his_o heavenly_a kingdom_n for_o the_o work_n of_o creation_n god_n do_v but_o speak_v 5._o psal_n 148._o vers_fw-la 5._o dixit_fw-la &_o facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la but_o for_o this_o other_o work_n christ_n be_v to_o suffer_v and_o die_v oportebat_fw-la christum_fw-la pati_fw-la 16._o luk._n 24._o vers_fw-la 16._o &_o ita_fw-la intrare_fw-la in_o gloriam_fw-la svam_fw-la it_o be_v behooveful_a for_o christ_n to_o die_v and_o so_o to_o enter_v into_o his_o glory_n therefore_o saint_n augustine_n sentence_n of_o true_a convert_v be_v to_o be_v note_v sermon_n augustin_n in_o sermon_n say_v conuersio_fw-la ad_fw-la bonum_fw-la non_fw-la homini_fw-la sed_fw-la deo_fw-la adscribenda_fw-la the_o conversion_n of_o a_o sinner_n unto_o good_a be_v not_o to_o be_v ascribe_v unto_o man_n but_o unto_o god_n who_o of_o himself_o can_v do_v all_o thing_n by_o his_o power_n 2_o now_o very_o as_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o great_a work_n of_o god_n god_n great_a also_o because_o it_o manife_v the_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n of_o god_n manifest_v his_o infinite_a power_n and_o mercy_n so_o neither_o be_v there_o any_o work_n of_o his_o more_o forcible_a to_o set_v out_o his_o glory_n and_o wisdom_n unto_o the_o world_n than_o the_o same_o it_o be_v a_o glory_n unto_o the_o artificer_n to_o delineate_v most_o perfect_a colour_n of_o emblem_n upon_o base_a iron_n and_o hard_a steel_n the_o skill_n also_o of_o the_o physician_n be_v praise-worthie_a when_o he_o free_v one_o from_o danger_n that_o be_v poison_v and_o swell_v by_o the_o bite_n of_o a_o viper_n with_o a_o present_a antidote_n so_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o his_o goodness_n chief_o shine_v in_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n so_o it_o shine_v in_o saint_n paul_n the_o apostle_n when_o he_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o poison_n of_o infidelity_n and_o swell_v therewith_o spirans_fw-la minarum_fw-la &_o caedis_fw-la 1._o actor_n 9_o vers_fw-la 1._o breathe_v forth_o threaten_n and_o slaughter_n against_o the_o disciple_n of_o the_o lord_n christ_n appear_v very_o opportune_o unto_o he_o cure_v he_o and_o strengthen_v he_o in_o faith_n hereby_o appear_v the_o frailty_n of_o humane_a nature_n and_o the_o power_n of_o god_n grace_n which_o redound_v much_o unto_o the_o glory_n of_o his_o saint_n while_o call_v unto_o their_o remembrance_n their_o pass_a danger_n they_o behold_v their_o happy_a security_n of_o present_a glory_n even_o as_o the_o mariner_n after_o the_o danger_n of_o shipwreck_n rejoice_v as_o a_o sick_a person_n rejoice_v after_o therecoverie_n of_o a_o perilous_a disease_n and_o as_o conquer_a soldier_n triumph_v and_o glory_v the_o more_o in_o their_o victory_n by_o how_o much_o their_o hazard_n and_o encounter_n be_v strong_a this_o saint_n augustine_n teach_v most_o elegant_o say_v nimis_fw-la exultant_fw-la sancti_fw-la dum_fw-la praeteriti_fw-la periculi_fw-la memores_fw-la dicunt_fw-la 3._o 4_o confess_v cap_n 3._o dextra_fw-la domini_fw-la fecit_fw-la virtutem_fw-la dextra_fw-la domini_fw-la exaltavit_fw-la i_o the_o saint_n do_v very_o much_o rejoice_v when_o mindful_a of_o pass_a danger_n they_o say_v the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v do_v his_o power_n the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o lord_n have_v exalt_v i_o so_o do_v saint_n paul_n rejoice_v when_o of_o a_o persecutor_n he_o be_v make_v a_o vessel_n of_o election_n so_o also_o saint_n matthew_n when_o of_o a_o customer_n he_o be_v make_v a_o evangelist_n so_o saint_n marie_n magdalene_n when_o from_o be_v a_o vessel_n of_o contumely_n and_o disgrace_n she_o be_v translate_v into_o a_o vessel_n of_o glory_n so_o saint_n peter_n when_o after_o the_o deny_v of_o his_o master_n he_o be_v make_v a_o constant_a pillar_n of_o truth_n by_o his_o personal_a perseverance_n in_o faith_n obtain_v he_o by_o christ_n prayer_n who_o say_v ego_fw-la rogani_fw-la pro_fw-la te_fw-la petre_n 22.32_o luke_n 22.32_o ut_fw-la non_fw-la deficiat_fw-la fides_fw-la tua_fw-la i_o have_v pray_v for_o thou_o peter_n that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o 3_o the_o observation_n hereof_o gentle_a reader_n make_v i_o true_o to_o discover_v conversion_n a_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o benefit_n of_o conversion_n as_o the_o case_n stand_v the_o obligation_n i_o be_o bind_v in_o to_o god_n for_o almighty_a god_n of_o his_o infinite_a goodness_n and_o out_o of_o the_o unexhausted_a riches_n of_o his_o mercy_n have_v bless_v my_o soul_n with_o a_o true_a and_o unfeigned_a conversion_n from_o the_o superstitious_a idolatrous_a and_o heretical_a religion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n unto_o the_o perfect_a knowledge_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o religion_n establish_v in_o this_o realm_n touch_v that_o faith_n which_o be_v conformable_a to_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a apostolic_a and_o catholic_a church_n which_o be_v maintain_v and_o defend_v by_o his_o majesty_n with_o who_o i_o may_v presume_v bold_o to_o say_v maugre_o all_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o will_v never_o be_v ashamed_a to_o render_v a_o account_n of_o my_o profession_n monarch_n praemonit_fw-la to_o all_o christian_a monarch_n and_o of_o that_o hope_n that_o
christian_a prince_n after_o this_o i_o fall_v by_o a_o mere_a chance_n upon_o the_o book_n of_o the_o now_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n write_v in_o confutation_n of_o some_o of_o master_n doctor_n hill_n quartern_a of_o reason_n next_o meet_v i_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n answer_n to_o parson_n with_o some_o other_o all_o which_o i_o peruse_v diligent_o and_o with_o great_a attention_n in_o which_o writing_n although_o some_o doctrinal_a point_n much_o distaste_v my_o palate_n by_o reason_n of_o my_o settle_a affection_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n yet_o i_o find_v many_o point_n both_o doctrinal_a and_o moral_a very_o remarkable_a and_o powerful_a to_o move_v strong_a doubt_n have_v i_o not_o by_o the_o implicit_a faith_n of_o whatsoever_o the_o roman_a church_n teach_v folue_v they_o all_o and_o so_o consequent_o hold_v they_o as_o matter_n of_o scandal_n and_o temptation_n the_o first_o of_o which_o ought_v not_o to_o move_v a_o settle_a constancy_n nor_o the_o second_o to_o find_v any_o entertainment_n but_o even_o at_o the_o very_a first_o occurrence_n to_o be_v reject_v yet_o notwithstanding_o at_o the_o last_o reflect_v upon_o many_o former_a observation_n i_o conceive_v that_o ground_n of_o implicit_a faith_n to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o danger_n of_o error_n and_o hold_v it_o fit_a to_o examine_v very_o diligent_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o true_a church_n especial_o for_o a_o clergyman_n who_o be_v to_o yield_v a_o reason_n of_o his_o faith_n and_o to_o give_v satisfaction_n unto_o other_o and_o chief_o in_o such_o time_n as_o the_o question_n be_v to_o be_v discuss_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n a_o man_n ought_v to_o hear_v to_o believe_v and_o to_o follow_v if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o heathen_a and_o publican_n then_o begin_v i_o to_o reflect_v more_o serious_o upon_o the_o former_a point_n and_o to_o grow_v very_o familiar_a with_o the_o aforesaid_a book_n and_o with_o much_o stay_n to_o examine_v the_o reason_n and_o solution_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n to_o his_o adversary_n in_o the_o chief_a point_n of_o doctrine_n now_o controvert_v where_o find_v many_o frivolous_a argument_n and_o idle_a solution_n i_o grow_v into_o much_o great_a care_n to_o discuss_v matter_n than_o ever_o before_o lest_o while_o i_o think_v to_o go_v the_o right_a way_n to_o heaven_n and_o to_o lead_v other_o thither_o we_o go_v both_o blindfolded_a to_o hell_n 6_o next_o unto_o this_o occasion_n happen_v another_o occasion_n the_o powder-treason_n another_o occasion_n and_o that_o be_v the_o most_o unmatched_a pouder-treason_n as_o i_o think_v the_o most_o odious_a conspiracy_n that_o ever_o be_v invent_v or_o intend_v by_o the_o brain_n of_o man_n the_o hateful_a memory_n whereof_o will_v prove_v everlasting_o to_o all_o posterity_n a_o spot_n indelible_a not_o only_o to_o the_o actor_n but_o also_o to_o all_o that_o shall_v maintain_v approve_v and_o allow_v of_o the_o same_o wish_v it_o have_v have_v the_o intend_a effect_n acknowledge_v no_o other_o faultinesse_n therein_o but_o the_o want_n of_o that_o success_n which_o no_o honest_a or_o good_a christian_a mind_n can_v ever_o endure_v this_o be_v so_o great_a a_o scandal_n to_o many_o that_o have_v they_o not_o be_v otherwise_o confirm_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o rome_n they_o will_v forthwith_o have_v abjure_v it_o and_o for_o myself_o in_o particular_a when_o i_o hear_v the_o name_n read_v in_o the_o proclamation_n of_o those_o who_o be_v the_o chief_a agent_n therein_o i_o stand_v amaze_v fear_v that_o it_o have_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o pope_n underhand_o because_o i_o think_v if_o garnet_n gerralde_n and_o greeneway_n be_v either_o agent_n or_o concealer_n thereof_o the_o providence_n of_o the_o jesuite_n be_v such_o that_o they_o will_v never_o whatsoever_o they_o think_v in_o their_o judgement_n of_o the_o lawfulness_n thereof_o have_v give_v consent_n thereunto_o without_o the_o approbation_n of_o high_a authority_n and_o my_o conclusion_n in_o judgement_n be_v that_o if_o ever_o i_o can_v be_v assure_v that_o the_o pope_n allow_v by_o any_o connivencie_n whatsoever_o of_o the_o fact_n i_o shall_v therein_o rather_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o hell_n than_o the_o vicegerent_n of_o christ_n and_o further_o i_o be_v much_o more_o amate_v when_o i_o hear_v that_o garnet_n shall_v acknowledge_v himself_o to_o have_v hear_v of_o it_o in_o sacramental_a confession_n and_o yet_o to_o conceal_v it_o from_o the_o state_n and_o to_o device_n no_o mean_n or_o way_n to_o discover_v the_o fact_n without_o open_v himself_o or_o his_o penitent_n which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o his_o own_o church_n oblige_v he_o unto_o simili_fw-la silu_a verbo_fw-la confessio_fw-la §._o 3._o num_fw-la 2._o prope_fw-la finem_fw-la emanuel_n sa_o aphoris_n verbo_fw-la confessor_n s._n thom._n addit_fw-la q._n 1._o de_fw-fr sigill_n confess_v art_n 1._o id_fw-la primum_fw-la circa_fw-la finem_fw-la colligitur_fw-la a_o simili_fw-la for_o the_o avoidance_n of_o so_o public_a a_o harm_n at_o least_o in_o general_a this_o make_v i_o very_o much_o to_o suspect_v that_o in_o his_o judgement_n he_o approve_v it_o whatsoever_o he_o pretend_v to_o the_o contrary_a for_o though_o he_o have_v make_v conscience_n to_o have_v reveal_v his_o penitent_n yet_o stand_v he_o bind_v in_o charity_n and_o justice_n to_o have_v reveal_v so_o much_o in_o general_a by_o some_o way_n or_o other_o as_o sufficient_a notice_n may_v have_v be_v give_v to_o avoid_v the_o public_a harm_n and_o desolation_n that_o shall_v have_v ensue_v to_o the_o state_n thereby_o which_o no_o doubt_v he_o may_v have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v will_v by_o some_o mean_n or_o other_o beside_o another_o thing_n which_o breed_v a_o great_a marvel_n in_o i_o be_v rome_n the_o pope_n exalt_v he_o soon_o after_o to_o the_o dignity_n of_o poenitentiarius_fw-la in_o rome_n that_o the_o pope_n himself_o do_v neither_o chastise_v greenway_n for_o the_o same_o consider_v the_o evidence_n give_v by_o his_o brother_n garnet_n no_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o far_o as_o ever_o i_o can_v understand_v as_o give_v any_o public_a intimation_n of_o dislike_n of_o that_o hateful_a designment_n which_o he_o may_v have_v do_v by_o either_o of_o his_o breve_n to_o the_o comfort_n and_o satisfaction_n of_o his_o child_n here_o in_o england_n and_o chief_o to_o the_o state_n who_o for_o his_o silence_n therein_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o suspect_v that_o he_o either_o wink_v at_o it_o in_o secret_a before_o hand_n or_o at_o least_o after_o the_o success_n thereof_o will_v have_v ratify_v it_o for_o the_o most_o heroical_a stratagem_n that_o ever_o catholic_n perform_v and_o have_v place_v he_o in_o the_o calendar_n of_o his_o famous_a martyr_n as_o m._n wilson_n have_v already_o do_v of_o garnet_n and_o owldcorne_n in_o his_o english_a martyrologe_n who_o as_o the_o head_n jesuit_n have_v report_v father_v upon_o himself_o that_o most_o infamous_a libel_n call_v pruritanus_n a_o book_n so_o full_a of_o blasphemous_a application_n of_o god_n sacred_a word_n so_o unrespective_a to_o his_o majesty_n so_o injurious_a to_o the_o state_n and_o so_o interlace_v with_o lascivious_a and_o beastly_a scurrility_n that_o it_o will_v shame_v any_o honest_a man_n to_o be_v esteem_v the_o author_n thereof_o therefore_o the_o jesuite_n do_v deal_v politic_o in_o ascribe_v it_o to_o a_o secular_a priest_n to_o make_v the_o secular_a clergy_n as_o odious_a to_o the_o state_n as_o themselves_o since_o it_o be_v well_o know_v and_o that_o not_o to_o a_o few_o that_o the_o first_o inventor_n of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o that_o book_n be_v a_o fair_a young_a jesuit_n sometime_o a_o student_n in_o the_o university_n of_o louvain_n who_o send_v his_o first_o invention_n thereof_o to_o parson_n and_o other_o at_o rome_n who_o make_v themselves_o full_a merry_a with_o they_o and_o well_o approve_v they_o insomuch_o that_o father_n talbot_n the_o master_n of_o the_o novice_n ingenious_o confess_v that_o the_o read_n of_o some_o of_o they_o cause_v he_o much_o to_o be_v distract_v in_o his_o prayer_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v think_v that_o that_o jesuit_n who_o may_v best_o challenge_v the_o first_o invention_n of_o that_o libel_v art_n when_o he_o shall_v come_v to_o read_v his_o breviarie_n by_o the_o memory_n of_o they_o he_o will_v offer_v up_o a_o very_a unsavoury_a incense_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n at_o these_o word_n et_fw-la dixit_fw-la omnis_fw-la populus_fw-la fiat_fw-la fiat_fw-la and_o will_v prove_v such_o a_o merry_a mad_a petitioner_n as_o will_v make_v all_o the_o black_a guard_n of_o hell_n attend_v he_o to_o dance_v for_o joy_n but_o to_o return_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o treason_n when_o i_o arrive_v beyond_o the_o sea_n and_o hear_v some_o to_o term_v it_o but_o a_o inconsiderate_a act_n as_o though_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o designment_n be_v not_o faulty_a
have_v most_o plain_a scripture_n in_o all_o point_n for_o the_o catholic_a faith_n he_o mean_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n reason_n doctor_n hill_n in_o his_o quart_n of_o reason_n the_o eight_o reason_n and_o doctor_n hill_n seem_v willing_a to_o have_v it_o think_v that_o they_o build_v upon_o the_o scripture_n in_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n when_o he_o say_v neither_o may_v here_o the_o protestant_n reply_n and_o say_v that_o the_o papist_n build_v upon_o miracle_n vision_n prophecy_n and_o upon_o such_o like_a but_o not_o upon_o the_o word_n for_o all_o that_o they_o allege_v be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n neither_o do_v they_o teach_v any_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o be_v derive_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a bible_n this_o affertion_n show_v much_o weakness_n of_o judgement_n and_o little_a skill_n even_o in_o the_o ground_n of_o divinity_n for_o who_o be_v so_o ignorant_a that_o know_v not_o the_o papist_n do_v build_v upon_o miracle_n vision_n prophecy_n and_o who_o so_o simple_a among_o they_o that_o know_v not_o that_o they_o build_v least_o upon_o the_o word_n when_o they_o genera_o teach_v that_o the_o write_a word_n be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o faith_n without_o tradition_n and_o what_o a_o foul_a misbeseem_v untruth_n be_v it_o for_o a_o doctor_n to_o say_v that_o all_o that_o they_o allege_v be_v most_o agreeable_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n when_o they_o ordinary_o object_n that_o the_o perpetual_a virginity_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n the_o assumption_n of_o her_o body_n into_o heaven_n the_o baptise_v of_o reasonless_a child_n the_o keep_n of_o the_o sunday_n and_o other_o the_o like_a be_v not_o to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n but_o be_v build_v only_o upon_o tradition_n be_v not_o this_o then_o a_o very_a gross_a forgetfulness_n to_o affirm_v that_o they_o teach_v not_o any_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o be_v derive_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a bible_n and_o yet_o he_o forget_v himself_o so_o much_o that_o again_o in_o the_o same_o reason_n he_o say_v even_o for_o the_o time_n past_a that_o the_o catholic_n meaning_n papist_n ever_o square_v their_o doctrine_n by_o the_o line_n and_o the_o level_n of_o the_o word_n of_o her_o spouse_n and_o therefore_o never_o have_v cause_n to_o reject_v the_o least_o jot_n of_o the_o holy_a bible_n and_o at_o one_o word_n the_o catholic_n follow_v the_o bible_n by_o all_o which_o it_o seem_v most_o apparent_a that_o the_o learned_a do_v approve_v the_o word_n of_o god_n that_o be_v the_o canonical_a scripture_n to_o be_v the_o most_o certain_a sufficient_a and_o most_o infallible_a rule_n that_o can_v be_v assign_v what_o reason_n then_o have_v i_o to_o forsake_v the_o iugement_n of_o so_o many_o learned_a man_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a writer_n who_o herein_o be_v most_o conformable_a to_o scripture_n itself_o 9_o for_o if_o we_o consider_v right_o of_o the_o nature_n of_o faith_n rule_n natural_a reason_n show_v this_o rule_n observe_v that_o the_o knowledge_n whereto_o it_o consent_v and_o the_o end_n to_o which_o it_o lead_v be_v supernatural_a nothing_o can_v seem_v more_o agreeable_a to_o natural_a discourse_n than_o to_o gather_v also_o that_o only_o that_o book_n which_o contain_v god_n reveal_v verity_n can_v be_v the_o sufficientesi_n mean_n to_o know_v they_o which_o be_v the_o holy_a writing_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v ask_v i_o why_o i_o believe_v the_o creation_n of_o the_o world_n all_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o moses_n elias_n and_o elisaeus_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n that_o christ_n be_v be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n i_o can_v answer_v with_o assuredness_n because_o this_o priest_n or_o that_o priest_n teach_v i_o so_o for_o reason_n will_v object_v that_o he_o may_v err_v or_o that_o all_o priest_n agree_v not_o therein_o or_o that_o first_o i_o must_v be_v assure_v he_o teach_v i_o doctrine_n of_o such_o a_o church_n as_o can_v misinstruct_v i_o which_o i_o must_v know_v by_o some_o other_o mean_n therefore_o my_o only_a answer_n must_v be_v that_o i_o believe_v because_o those_o scripture_n reveal_v from_o god_n do_v teach_v i_o which_o be_v the_o most_o sufficient_a rule_n whereby_o i_o can_v have_v assure_v knowledge_n of_o truth_n reveal_v from_o god_n by_o all_o which_o it_o seem_v most_o clear_a unto_o m_o that_o only_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v the_o most_o assure_a sufficient_a and_o infallible_a rule_n by_o which_o i_o be_o to_o measure_v my_o faith_n and_o all_o virtue_n belong_v thereunto_o and_o therefore_o all_o other_o rule_n be_v very_a subject_n to_o the_o crookedness_n of_o many_o error_n 2._o silu_a vers_fw-la 60._o fides_fw-la nu._n 2._o hence_o i_o begin_v to_o see_v my_o former_a error_n in_o hold_v with_o silvester_n that_o the_o pope_n as_o the_o vice_n gerent_fw-la of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n be_v to_o be_v my_o rule_n according_a to_o his_o assertion_n take_v out_o of_o saint_n thomas_n the_o pope_n have_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n to_o who_o it_o appertain_v to_o determine_v those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o faith_n 3._o 22._o 1._o 11._o be_v 3._o that_o they_o may_v be_v hold_v of_o all_o with_o a_o constant_a faith_n and_o in_o he_o reside_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n therefore_o it_o belong_v to_o faith_n to_o adhere_v unto_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o chief_a bishop_n in_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o faith_n yea_o also_o in_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v unto_o good_a manner_n because_o in_o such_o the_o church_n can_v err_v nor_o consequent_o her_o head_n as_o head_n or_o as_o bishop_n which_o i_o understand_v always_o to_o be_v true_a when_o in_o doubt_n he_o be_v require_v not_o as_o a_o learned_a man_n or_o such_o a_o person_n but_o as_o the_o head_n of_o christianity_n or_o according_a to_o archidiaconus_fw-la this_o note_v this_o when_o he_o determine_v with_o the_o council_n of_o cardinal_n but_o the_o first_o be_v better_a because_o the_o pope_n may_v be_v without_o cardinal_n but_o when_o i_o remember_v that_o two_o pope_n namely_o sixtus_n and_o clemens_n set_v out_o two_o bibles_n within_o two_o year_n space_n for_o sixtus_n bible_n come_v forth_o in_o the_o year_n 1590._o and_o clements_n in_o the_o year_n 1592._o with_o commandment_n to_o be_v read_v and_o follow_v upon_o penalty_n mention_v in_o their_o several_a breve_n wherein_o many_o disagreement_n contradiction_n and_o contrariety_n appear_v in_o so_o important_a a_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o the_o appointment_n of_o what_o be_v scripture_n and_o what_o be_v not_o that_o herein_o pope_n sixtus_n grievous_o err_v i_o conclude_v that_o the_o pope_n sentence_n definitive_a can_v not_o be_v a_o sufficient_a rule_n for_o i_o to_o measure_v my_o faith_n by_o unless_o i_o will_v be_v like_a unto_o a_o principal_a roman_a clerk_n of_o this_o land_n affirm_v that_o here_o in_o england_n he_o think_v the_o opinion_n of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n the_o best_a to_o be_v hold_v concern_v deposition_n of_o king_n namely_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v his_o dominion_n in_o temporalty_n only_o indirect_o yet_o if_o he_o be_v in_o rome_n he_o will_v follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o bosius_n that_o he_o have_v it_o direct_o as_o the_o most_o plausible_a there_o and_o much_o wonder_v that_o such_o a_o assertion_n shall_v pass_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o so_o grave_a a_o man_n i_o begin_v to_o infer_v that_o if_o but_o place_n or_o person_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o such_o man_n faith_n in_o matter_n of_o such_o weight_n it_o be_v time_n for_o i_o who_o regard_v but_o the_o salvation_n of_o my_o soul_n to_o seek_v after_o some_o better_a rule_n more_o sure_a and_o infallible_a 10_o now_o then_o courteous_a reader_n have_v find_v out_o this_o most_o sufficient_a rule_n of_o faith_n namely_o the_o holy_a scripture_n i_o refer_v myself_o unto_o your_o impartial_a censure_n to_o judge_v whether_o i_o can_v do_v less_o then_o to_o measure_v all_o the_o doctrinal_a point_n of_o my_o faith_n by_o this_o golden_a meet-wand_n and_o therewith_o measure_v out_o the_o spiritual_a and_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o if_o thou_o shall_v judge_v fit_a for_o i_o i_o hope_v such_o shall_v be_v the_o care_n of_o thy_o own_o salvation_n as_o to_o use_v it_o always_o in_o like_a manner_n for_o thyself_o that_o thy_o faith_n may_v be_v free_a from_o all_o crookedness_n of_o heresy_n and_o thereby_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o god_n promise_n for_o the_o manifold_a division_n about_o the_o church_n the_o diverse_a error_n teach_v by_o those_o that_o pretend_v to_o be_v other_o man_n teacher_n and_o even_o the_o love_n of_o thyself_o may_v well_o make_v thou_o say_v with_o holy_a david_n follow_v the_o
true_a catholic_a church_n and_o desire_v not_o to_o show_v myself_o altogether_o ingrate_a unto_o god_n so_o great_a mercy_n i_o have_v free_o decree_v to_o consecrate_v and_o offer_v up_o myself_o whole_o unto_o his_o divine_a service_n for_o attain_v as_o much_o as_o in_o i_o lie_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o say_a college_n and_o i_o do_v promise_n and_o confirm_v by_o this_o my_o oath_n unto_o almighty_a god_n that_o i_o be_o and_o shall_v be_v ever_o most_o ready_a in_o mind_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o holy_a grace_n to_o receive_v in_o due_a time_n holy_a order_n and_o to_o return_v into_o england_n there_o to_o gain_v soul_n whensoever_o the_o superior_a of_o this_o college_n shall_v think_v good_a by_o virtue_n of_o his_o office_n to_o command_v i_o thereunto_o for_o the_o take_n of_o so_o unlawful_a a_o oath_n in_o such_o my_o blindness_n against_o the_o lawful_a power_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o this_o realm_n with_o contempt_n of_o their_o law_n to_o the_o contrary_a as_o also_o for_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o content_n therein_o specify_v upon_o false_a supposition_n of_o gain_v soul_n to_o god_n while_o i_o draw_v they_o from_o god_n from_o my_o heart_n i_o repent_v i_o crave_v pardon_n of_o god_n and_o his_o majesty_n with_o diverse_a other_o who_o i_o have_v offend_v and_o grievous_o provoke_v their_o just_a indignation_n against_o i_o acknowledge_v that_o i_o may_v true_o say_v unto_o god_n with_o the_o prodigal_a son_n that_o waste_v his_o substance_n in_o a_o far_a country_n i_o will_v go_v to_o my_o father_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o father_n i_o have_v sin_v against_o heaven_n and_o against_o thou_o 21._o luke_n 15._o v._o 21._o i_o be_o no_o more_o worthy_a to_o be_v call_v thy_o son_n if_o thou_o courteous_a reader_n art_n as_o i_o be_v glorify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o the_o view_n of_o thy_o error_n which_o i_o hope_v by_o this_o treatise_n sufficient_o to_o lay_v open_a unto_o thou_o turn_v to_o god_n who_o be_v mild_a and_o merciful_a to_o all_o true_a penitent_a sinner_n purpose_v amendment_n and_o acknowledge_v their_o sin_n and_o if_o thou_o be_v otherwise_o let_v i_o entreat_v thou_o for_o the_o love_n of_o god_n to_o give_v he_o thanks_n for_o i_o and_o thou_o thyself_o to_o be_v constant_a and_o firm_a in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o present_a church_n of_o england_n which_o teach_v the_o true_a christian_a apostolic_a and_o ancient_a faith_n in_o which_o through_o god_n grace_n we_o may_v be_v save_v chap._n ix_o contain_v a_o observation_n of_o the_o wonder_n and_o suppose_a miracle_n which_o as_o christ_n have_v foretold_v the_o pseudo-christs_n and_o prophet_n shall_v do_v for_o the_o seduce_a of_o god_n elect_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a among_o the_o diverse_a mark_n which_o cardinal_n ballarmine_n bring_v to_o show_v we_o which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n rome_n miracle_n make_v more_o for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n than_o for_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o to_o which_o society_n of_o christian_a believer_n be_v aught_o to_o join_v ourselves_o to_o be_v true_a child_n of_o christ_n he_o urge_v for_o his_o eleven_o mark_n the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n in_o these_o word_n miracle_n be_v necessary_a to_o persuade_v man_n to_o a_o new_a faith_n epitome_n bellarm._n de_fw-fr notis_fw-la eccles_n l._n 4._o c._n 14._o in_o epitome_n or_o to_o a_o extraordinary_a mission_n and_o be_v sufficient_a and_o efficacious_a to_o prove_v the_o same_o so_o that_o where_o true_a miracle_n be_v find_v without_o doubt_n there_o be_v the_o true_a faith_n which_o assertion_n when_o i_o consider_v deep_o with_o due_a observation_n of_o all_o point_n of_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o work_n of_o miracle_n i_o find_v this_o mark_n to_o make_v as_o much_o for_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o present_a english_a church_n for_o that_o it_o be_v the_o same_o which_o be_v new_a in_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v confirm_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o all_o believer_n by_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o holy_a man_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n at_o the_o first_o plant_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o hereby_o i_o be_o put_v in_o mind_n that_o as_o aristotle_n say_v aristoteles_n aristoteles_n prudentis_fw-la est_fw-la distinguere_fw-la it_o be_v the_o part_n of_o a_o prudent_a man_n to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o time_n &_o time_n betwixt_o doctrine_n &_o faithful_o compare_v the_o believer_n of_o the_o first_o age_n even_o of_o rome_n itself_o with_o those_o of_o after-age_n which_o as_o i_o endeavour_v to_o perform_v in_o examine_v this_o mark_n of_o miracle_n i_o observe_v that_o unless_o it_o be_v do_v with_o great_a prudence_n infinite_a number_n may_v be_v carry_v simple_o and_o ignorant_o into_o gross_a error_n to_o the_o great_a impeachment_n of_o god_n glory_n and_o miserable_a seduction_n of_o their_o own_o soul_n and_o therefore_o to_o lay_v down_o this_o observation_n i_o think_v it_o good_a to_o use_v extraordinary_a diligence_n that_o therewith_o all_o i_o may_v be_v the_o more_o assure_v of_o truth_n that_o the_o world_n may_v clear_o see_v that_o this_o pretence_n of_o miracle_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o the_o present_a faith_n of_o rome_n but_o only_o against_o it_o show_v the_o professor_n thereof_o not_o to_o be_v true_a christian_n 2_o for_o albeit_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n not_o to_o be_v deny_v miracle_n all_o that_o do_v miracle_n do_v not_o true_a miracle_n that_o all_o true_a miracle_n can_v only_o be_v do_v by_o god_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o follow_v that_o all_o that_o do_v miracle_n do_v true_a miracle_n and_o such_o as_o be_v do_v by_o he_o for_o to_o every_o true_a miracle_n four_o thing_n be_v require_v as_o a_o learned_a roman_a teacher_n affirm_v first_o 20._o four_o thing_n require_v to_o true_a miracle_n io._n de_fw-fr combis_n in_o compend_v theolog_fw-la verit_fw-la lib._n 1._o ca._n 20._o it_o must_v be_v of_o god_n second_o it_o must_v be_v beyond_o nature_n three_o it_o must_v be_v evident_a four_o it_o must_v be_v before_o the_o corroboration_n of_o faith_n therefore_o if_o any_o of_o these_o four_o be_v want_v it_o may_v be_v call_v a_o marvel_v but_o not_o a_o miracle_n therefore_o it_o be_v also_o to_o be_v know_v that_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v miracle_n though_o not_o true_a miracle_n yet_o such_o miracle_n as_o to_o man_n may_v seem_v true_a miracle_n for_o thomas_n aquinas_n say_v and_o that_o very_o true_o out_o of_o s._n augustine_n that_o miracle_n by_o art_n magic_n be_v make_v contra_fw-la aug._n lib._n 83._o q._n 79_o tom._n 4._o part._n 1._o q._n 14._o q._n 4._o sed_fw-la contra_fw-la which_o be_v altogether_o like_a unto_o those_o miracle_n which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n which_o he_o explicate_v dogmatical_o after_o this_o manner_n if_o a_o miracle_n be_v take_v proper_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v miracle_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n but_o only_o god_n because_o a_o miracle_n proper_o be_v term_v that_o which_o be_v beyond_o the_o order_n of_o any_o nature_n create_v yet_o sometime_o in_o a_o large_a sense_n that_o be_v call_v a_o miracle_n which_o exceed_v the_o faculty_n and_o understanding_n of_o man_n and_o so_o the_o devil_n can_v do_v miracle_n which_o man_n admire_v in_o that_o they_o exceed_v their_o power_n and_o knowledge_n for_o one_o man_n when_o he_o do_v any_o thing_n than_o be_v above_o the_o power_n and_o knowledge_n of_o a_o other_o man_n he_o lead_v the_o other_o into_o a_o admiration_n of_o his_o work_n that_o in_o some_o sort_n he_o seem_v to_o do_v a_o miracle_n yet_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v that_o albeit_o such_o work_n of_o devil_n which_o seem_v miracle_n unto_o we_o re●ch_v not_o unot_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o miracle_n they_o be_v notwithstanding_o sometime_o true_a thing_n as_o when_o sire_n fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o with_o one_o blow_n consume_v the_o family_n of_o job_n with_o all_o the_o herd_n of_o his_o cattle_n and_o a_o whirlwind_n overthrow_v the_o house_n 19_o aug._n 20._o the_o civitae_n dei_fw-la c._n 19_o slay_v his_o child_n which_o be_v the_o work_n of_o satan_n be_v not_o phantasm_n as_o augustine_n say_v and_o therefore_o well_o do_v saint_n augustine_a say_v in_o a_o other_o place_n speak_v of_o the_o lie_a miracle_n of_o antichrist_n as_o he_o same_o doctor_n note_v that_o the_o work_n of_o antichrist_n may_v be_v call_v sign_n of_o lie_v 4._o li._n 83._o q._n 79._o to_o 4._o either_o because_o he_o will_v deceive_v mortal_a sense_n by_o phantasm_n seem_v to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o do_v not_o or_o because_o that_o if_o they_o be_v true_a prodigy_n yet_o they_o draw_v those_o that_o shall_v believe_v they_o to_o a_o lie_n hence_o the_o same_o doctor_n saint_n augustine_n say_v 4._o aug._n li._n 83._o q._n 79._o a_o
medio_fw-la tom_fw-mi 4._o that_o when_o sorcerer_n do_v those_o thing_n which_o saint_n do_v they_o be_v do_v for_o a_o different_a end_n and_o by_o a_o different_a power_n for_o sorcerer_n do_v they_o seek_v their_o own_o glory_n saint_n do_v they_o seek_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n sorcerer_n do_v they_o by_o certain_a private_a contract_n saint_n do_v they_o by_o public_a administration_n and_o command_n of_o god_n unto_o who_o all_o thing_n create_v be_v subject_a 3_o now_o therefore_o since_o seem_a miracle_n do_v by_o the_o devil_n miracle_n the_o true_a catholic_a church_n the_o approver_n of_o true_a miracle_n exceed_v the_o ordinary_a power_n of_o nature_n may_v deceive_v many_o if_o they_o judge_v their_o doctrine_n by_o they_o and_o for_o that_o it_o be_v hard_o for_o a_o man_n to_o be_v able_a to_o say_v whether_o a_o miracle_n be_v do_v by_o the_o power_n of_o almighty_a god_n or_o by_o the_o power_n of_o the_o devil_n because_o both_o exceed_v our_o understanding_n and_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o nature_n it_o stand_v i_o upon_o to_o search_v out_o some_o infallible_a mean_n by_o which_o i_o may_v be_v assure_v that_o they_o be_v true_a miracle_n and_o such_o as_o i_o may_v confident_o rely_v upon_o in_o which_o scrutiny_n i_o can_v find_v no_o better_a rule_n than_o to_o observe_v whether_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n or_o no_o which_o i_o do_v learn_v out_o of_o saint_n augustine_n 16._o aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n ca._n 16._o say_v whatsoever_o thing_n of_o this_o quality_n be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n therefore_o they_o be_v to_o be_v approve_v because_o they_o be_v do_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n therefore_o she_o be_v not_o manifest_v catholic_a because_o those_o thing_n be_v do_v in_o she_o whereby_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o miracle_n absolute_o be_v not_o a_o proof_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n but_o the_o catholic_a church_n a_o approover_n of_o true_a miracle_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o confirmation_n of_o her_o truth_n as_o her_o truth_n a_o confirmation_n of_o they_o whence_o i_o observe_v further_o that_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n not_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_a church_n because_o she_o teach_v not_o the_o true_a catholic_a ancient_a faith_n without_o mixture_n of_o many_o novelty_n do_v in_o vain_a all_o eadge_n miracle_n in_o her_o behalf_n which_o for_o that_o they_o be_v do_v out_o of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o antichrist_n lie_v sign_n &_o prodigy_n therefore_o i_o may_v pronounce_v confident_o with_o s._n aug._n unto_o the_o papist_n i_o say_v not_o that_o these_o thing_n be_v so_o 16._o aug._n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n ca._n 16._o because_o such_o a_o one_o do_v such_o and_o such_o marvel_n but_o let_v they_o prove_v their_o church_n by_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o by_o nothing_o else_o these_o be_v the_o demonstration_n of_o our_o cause_n this_o note_v this_o these_o be_v our_o foundation_n these_o be_v our_o ground_n whereupon_o we_o build_v whereby_o we_o see_v miracle_n exclude_v from_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n as_o the_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n will_v fain_o persuade_v the_o world_n that_o so_o his_o roman_a church_n may_v be_v approve_v for_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n vnapproveable_a therefore_o be_v the_o assertion_n of_o master_n d._n hill_n who_o challenge_v much_o unto_o the_o roman_a church_n by_o her_o glory_n of_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o her_o saint_n his_o word_n be_v these_o quartern_a the_o ten_o reason_n of_o this_o quartern_a now_o it_o be_v so_o manifest_a that_o there_o have_v be_v a_o infinite_a number_n of_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o those_o who_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a religion_n and_o never_o any_o by_o they_o who_o be_v not_o of_o that_o church_n since_o christ_n time_n as_o he_o who_o shall_v deny_v it_o may_v be_v prove_v no_o less_o impudent_a and_o shameless_a than_o be_v who_o shall_v deny_v that_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o mass_n say_v in_o time_n pass_v in_o england_n or_o that_o ever_o there_o be_v any_o war_n between_o turk_n and_o christian_n or_o that_o there_o be_v any_o such_o country_n as_o the_o east_n and_o west-indies_n which_o thing_n if_o a_o man_n shall_v deny_v will_v he_o not_o of_o all_o man_n be_v deem_v not_o only_o impudent_a but_o mad_a drunken_a or_o afoole_n in_o which_o word_n because_o master_n doctor_n hill_n seem_v much_o to_o forget_v himself_o i_o must_v needs_o refresh_v his_o memory_n with_o some_o few_o interrogatory_n what_o master_n doctor_n i_o pray_v since_o christ_n time_n do_v not_o simmon_n magus_n work_n miracle_n who_o as_o baronius_n say_v 22._o baron_fw-fr a_o 68_o nu_fw-la 22._o make_v image_n to_o walk_v and_o will_v lie_v in_o the_o fire_n without_o hurt_n and_o fly_v in_o the_o air_n and_o make_v bread_n of_o stone_n he_o can_v open_v door_n fast_o shut_v and_o unloose_v band_n of_o iron_n and_o have_v many_o shadow_n follow_v he_o as_o it_o have_v be_v man_n will_v you_o say_v he_o be_v a_o roman_a catholic_a 4._o tacit._n lib._n 4._o do_v not_o vespasian_n the_o emperor_n at_o alexandria_n restore_v a_o blind_a man_n to_o sight_n will_v you_o say_v he_o be_v a_o roman_a catholic_a who_o be_v they_o christ_n speak_v of_o when_o he_o say_v 22._o matth._n 7_o 22._o many_o will_v say_v to_o i_o in_o that_o day_n lord_n have_v we_o not_o by_o thy_o name_n prophesy_v and_o by_o thy_o name_n cast_v out_o devil_n and_o by_o thy_o name_n do_v many_o great_a work_n and_o then_o will_v i_o profess_v to_o they_o i_o never_o know_v you_o depart_v from_o i_o you_o that_o work_n iniquity_n what_o will_v you_o say_v that_o these_o worker_n of_o miracle_n and_o also_o of_o iniquity_n be_v of_o your_o catholic_a roman_a religion_n what_o think_v you_o of_o those_o saint_n augustine_n speak_v of_o 16._o august_n de_fw-fr unit_fw-la eccles_n cap._n 16._o say_v if_o there_o be_v do_v some_o miracle_n of_o heretic_n we_o ought_v the_o more_o to_o take_v heed_n because_o when_o the_o lord_n have_v say_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v some_o deceiver_n who_o by_o do_v many_o sign_n shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a he_o do_v add_v commend_v it_o vehement_o &_o say_v behold_v i_o have_v foretell_v it_o unto_o you_o what_o will_v you_o grant_v all_o these_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a religion_n loan_n august_n tract_n 13._o in_o loan_n what_o will_v you_o say_v unto_o the_o same_o ancient_a doctor_n in_o another_o place_n where_o he_o say_v against_o these_o miracle-monger_n as_o i_o may_v so_o call_v they_o my_o god_n have_v make_v i_o wary_a say_v in_o the_o last_o time_n there_o shall_v arise_v false_a prophet_n do_v sign_n and_o wonder_n what_o will_v you_o grant_v none_o of_o these_o to_o be_v yet_o come_v or_o will_v you_o grant_v they_o all_o to_o be_v of_o your_o religion_n what_o will_v you_o say_v to_o your_o countryman_n 4._o prompt_a mor._n part_n aestiu_fw-la pag._n 627._o dom_n 24._o nu_fw-la 4._o master_n doctor_n stapleton_n public_a professor_n of_o divinity_n in_o louvain_n and_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o your_o acquaintance_n in_o douai_n who_o say_v for_o the_o more_o trial_n of_o the_o godly_a not_o only_a antichrist_n himself_o and_o his_o near_a forerunner_n but_o all_o heretic_n also_o may_v do_v true_a miracle_n by_o the_o permission_n of_o god_n as_o the_o sorcerer_n may_v do_v will_v you_o grant_v such_o forerunner_n and_o heretic_n to_o be_v of_o your_o catholic_a roman_a religion_n or_o will_v you_o say_v doctor_n stapleton_n err_v in_o call_v they_o true_a miracle_n or_o will_v you_o recant_v your_o former_a assertion_n acknowledge_v your_o former_a mistake_n and_o than_o shall_v i_o be_v as_o glad_a as_o now_o i_o have_v commiseration_n of_o your_o error_n beseech_v god_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n of_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n that_o you_o may_v see_v both_o your_o own_o error_n and_o the_o error_n of_o other_o of_o the_o present_a roman_a religion_n and_o how_o different_a it_o be_v from_o the_o ancient_a roman_a religion_n which_o in_o saint_n paul_n day_n be_v famous_a through_o the_o world_n for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v not_o but_o upon_o these_o and_o other_o consideration_n observe_v the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o be_v free_a from_o such_o false_a prophet_n and_o pseudochrist_n that_o they_o miracle_n as_o christ_n fore_o tell_v shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o neither_o do_v they_o pretend_v themselves_o to_o work_v miracle_n and_o so_o to_o hunt_v after_o their_o own_o estimation_n and_o applause_n for_o their_o holiness_n as_o the_o teacher_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v neither_o do_v they_o hold_v
it_o absolute_o necessary_a that_o god_n shall_v continue_v that_o faith_n by_o miracle_n which_o be_v former_o plant_v by_o they_o but_o rest_v themselves_o content_v with_o the_o former_a of_o the_o primitive_a church_n lest_o otherwise_o they_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o seduction_n whence_o i_o conclude_v to_o myself_o that_o unless_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v prove_v herself_o to_o be_v true_a catholic_a and_o ancient_a primitive_a i_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v lead_v by_o her_o pretend_a miracle_n in_o regard_n that_o doctor_n stapleton_n say_v heretic_n and_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n may_v do_v true_a miracle_n by_o god_n permission_n for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o good_a which_o neither_o myself_o nor_o any_o manelse_a aught_o to_o believe_v because_o christ_n have_v arm_v we_o with_o a_o warn_a caveat_n against_o they_o say_v nolite_fw-la eye_n credere_fw-la 4_o which_o 24_o pretence_n of_o miracle_n a_o sign_n of_o false_a teacher_n matth._n ●4_n 24_o how_o true_a it_o be_v i_o appeal_v to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o our_o saviour_n word_n be_v most_o plain_a there_o shall_v arise_v false_a christ_n and_o false_a prophet_n shall_v show_v great_a sign_n and_o wonde_n so_o that_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a they_o shall_v deceive_v the_o very_a elect_n behold_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o before_o but_o believe_v they_o not_o by_o which_o warning_n advice_n be_v give_v to_o beware_v of_o they_o to_o discern_v they_o and_o not_o to_o give_v credit_n unto_o their_o teach_n notwithstanding_o all_o their_o miracle_n neither_o be_v saint_n paul_n prediction_n less_o significant_a of_o they_o who_o remember_v we_o 2.9_o 2._o thess_n 2.9_o that_o the_o come_n of_o that_o son_n of_o perdition_n be_v by_o the_o work_n of_o satan_n with_o all_o power_n and_o sign_n and_o lie_v wonder_n and_o in_o all_o deceive_v ablenesse_n of_o unrighteousness_n among_o they_o that_o perish_v because_o they_o receive_v not_o the_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n 13.13.14_o apocal_a cap._n 13.13.14_o that_o they_o may_v be_v save_v saint_n john_n also_o in_o his_o revelation_n speak_v of_o the_o second_o beast_n say_v he_o do_v great_a wonder_n so_o that_o he_o make_v fire_n to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n on_o the_o earth_n in_o the_o fight_n of_o man_n and_o deceive_v they_o that_o dwellon_n the_o earth_n by_o the_o sign_n which_o ae_z permit_v to_o he_o to_o do_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o beast_n 16.13_o apocal._n cap._n 16.13_o afterward_o we_o hear_v also_o again_o that_o three_o unclean_a spirit_n like_o frog_n come_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o dragon_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o beast_n and_o out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n for_o they_o be_v the_o spirit_n of_o devil_n work_v miracle_n and_o moreover_o last_o we_o find_v in_o the_o same_o book_n that_o the_o beast_n be_v take_v and_o with_o he_o that_o false_a prophet_n 19.20_o apocal._n cap._n 19.20_o that_o wrought_v miracle_n before_o he_o whereby_o he_o deceive_v they_o that_o receive_v the_o beast_n mark_v now_o what_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v by_o power_n sign_n and_o wonder_n i_o will_v cite_v the_o word_n of_o joannes_n vignerius_n 24.24_o institut_fw-la christ_n cap._n 9_o §._o 2._o vers_fw-la 3._o hebr._n 2._o matth._n 24.24_o who_o say_v that_o miracle_n in_o the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v term_v power_n sign_n wonder_n and_o portente_n for_o hebrew_n the_o second_o it_o be_v say_v god_n witness_v in_o sign_n and_o portent_n and_o diverse_a power_n and_z matthew_z the_o four_o and_o twenty_o they_o be_v call_v prodigy_n which_o differ_v thus_o in_o that_o because_o they_o exceed_v the_o faculty_n of_o nature_n they_o be_v term_v power_n but_o in_o that_o they_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o manifestation_n of_o grace_n they_o be_v call_v sign_n and_o for_o their_o excellency_n they_o be_v term_v wonder_n and_o prodigy_n as_o it_o be_v show_v thing_n far_o off_o so_o that_o put_v all_o these_o place_n together_o i_o can_v not_o conclude_v otherwise_o then_o unless_o i_o will_v believe_v these_o false_a prophet_n unless_o i_o be_v willing_a to_o be_v a_o entertenido_n to_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n and_o be_v delude_v most_o notorious_o by_o lie_v wonder_n unless_o i_o will_v be_v a_o perpetual_a consort_n unto_o the_o frog_n vamp_v forth_o of_o the_o dragon_n mouth_n unless_o i_o will_v be_v wilful_o deceive_v as_o one_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o beast_n mark_v then_o to_o shake_v hand_n with_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n boast_v so_o much_o in_o her_o miraculous_a power_n sign_n wonder_n and_o prodigy_n for_o in_o the_o reform_a church_n i_o find_v no_o such_o illusion_n pretend_v nor_o the_o least_o danger_n thereof_o nor_o any_o where_o else_o but_o in_o the_o present_a roman_a church_n 5_o by_o which_o observation_n time_n miracle_n not_o to_o be_v expect_v in_o the_o latter_a time_n i_o be_v the_o rather_o induce_v to_o this_o conclusion_n for_o that_o i_o find_v diverse_a incline_v to_o think_v it_o too_o much_o curiosity_n now_o that_o the_o faith_n be_v plant_v and_o after_o so_o long_a continuance_n to_o seek_v it_o out_o by_o more_o miracle_n therefore_o first_o i_o will_v set_v down_o the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o old_a dominican_n friar_n distinguish_v the_o time_n of_o do_v miracle_n who_o word_n be_v these_o the_o church_n have_v a_o threefold_a state_n viz._n 6._o jacob_n de_fw-fr vorag_n de_fw-fr sanctis_fw-la in_o die_fw-la ascensio_fw-la ser_fw-mi 6._o the_o primitive_a the_o modern_a and_o the_o last_o in_o the_o primitive_a state_n miracle_n be_v wrought_v often_o but_o now_o seldom_o and_o in_o the_o last_o state_n that_o be_v of_o antichrist_n they_o shall_v be_v do_v most_o seldom_o in_o the_o primitive_a state_n they_o be_v do_v often_o because_o according_a to_o saint_n chrysostome_n the_o ancient_a miraracle_n have_v admiration_n profit_n and_o necessity_n therefore_o then_o according_a to_o saint_n chrysostome_n miracle_n be_v do_v as_o well_o for_o admiration_n because_o man_n be_v then_o accustom_v to_o their_o sense_n be_v therefore_o to_o be_v lift_v up_o as_o for_o profit_n because_o then_o many_o be_v infirm_a and_o oppress_v of_o devil_n and_o for_o necessity_n because_o they_o be_v infidel_n and_o wrap_v up_o in_o error_n but_o in_o the_o modern_a state_n they_o be_v seldom_o do_v because_o necessity_n require_v they_o not_o man_n be_v now_o believer_n yet_o sometime_o they_o be_v wrought_v because_o profit_v and_o utility_n exalt_v they_o for_o that_o sometime_o man_n be_v find_v weak_a and_o to_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o they_o and_o why_o miracle_n be_v not_o do_v now_o so_o frequent_o as_o they_o be_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n there_o be_v a_o threefold_a reason_n one_o be_v for_o the_o strength_n of_o faith_n because_o now_o the_o church_n be_v strengthen_v and_o establish_v in_o faith_n this_o reason_n bernard_n assign_v put_v a_o example_n of_o the_o plant_n into_o which_o we_o power_n water_n till_o we_o see_v it_o fasten_v in_o the_o earth_n second_o for_o the_o profitable_a example_n of_o the_o world_n 22._o de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la lib._n 22._o this_o reason_n augustine_n assign_v say_v whosoever_o require_v yet_o wonder_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v he_o be_v a_o great_a wonder_n himself_o who_o believe_v not_o when_o the_o world_n believe_v three_o for_o the_o great_a merit_n of_o faith_n because_o according_a to_o saint_n gregory_n faith_n have_v no_o merit_n where_o humane_a reason_n provoke_v it_o but_o in_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v be_v wrought_v but_o seldom_o for_o three_o reason_n that_o isidorus_n teach_v either_o that_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o persecutor_n may_v become_v more_o bold_a or_o that_o the_o patience_n of_o the_o saint_n may_v be_v the_o more_o prove_v or_o that_o the_o lightness_n may_v be_v the_o more_o show_v of_o those_o which_o shall_v fall_v who_o speak_v here_o of_o the_o miracle_n of_o saint_n in_o these_o three_o state_n of_o time_n she_o w_v they_o shall_v be_v scanty_a in_o the_o middle_a age_n after_o christ_n and_o very_o raw_a in_o the_o last_o age_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a what_o can_v i_o do_v but_o suspect_v the_o pretend_a miracle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o swarm_v with_o so_o many_o book_n replenish_v with_o their_o narration_n in_o such_o strange_a and_o unheard_a manner_n as_o there_o be_v never_o the_o like_a and_o therefore_o they_o easy_o seem_v to_o surmount_v all_o belief_n and_o i_o may_v more_o large_o press_v those_o word_n against_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o this_o author_n point_v at_o say_v to_o all_o her_o follower_n out_o of_o saint_n augustine_n 22._o de_fw-fr civet_n dei_fw-la lib._n 22._o why_o say_v they_o be_v not_o the_o miracle_n now_o do_v which_o you_o do_v preach_v to_o have_v be_v do_v i_o may_v
say_v that_o before_o the_o world_n do_v believe_v they_o be_v necessrie_a to_o this_o end_n that_o the_o world_n may_v believe_v but_o whosoever_o do_v inquire_v after_o wonder_n that_o he_o may_v believe_v he_o himself_o be_v a_o great_a wonderment_n who_o believe_v not_o now_o the_o world_n do_v believe_v by_o which_o word_n i_o observe_v a_o necessity_n why_o man_n shall_v look_v for_o miracle_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n but_o none_o why_o we_o shall_v expect_v they_o now_o but_o rather_o why_o we_o shall_v fear_v to_o be_v deceive_v by_o beleeive_v false_a one_o for_o true_a one_o and_o therefore_o saint_n augustine_n give_v another_o strong_a reason_n to_o hold_v he_o in_o the_o church_n than_o the_o continuance_n of_o miracle_n say_v fundamenti_fw-la contra_fw-la epi._n fundamenti_fw-la the_o consent_n of_o people_n and_o nation_n do_v hold_v i_o there_o do_v hold_v i_o a_o authority_n which_o be_v begin_v with_o miracle_n nourish_v by_o hope_n increase_v by_o charity_n confirm_v by_o antiquity_n by_o which_o i_o observe_v though_o he_o show_v the_o authority_n of_o that_o sacred_a doctrine_n confirm_v in_o the_o begin_n by_o miracle_n as_o a_o mean_n to_o hold_v he_o yet_o he_o speak_v of_o no_o continuance_n of_o they_o but_o leave_v confirmation_n to_o the_o authority_n of_o sacred_a doctrine_n itself_o which_o must_v be_v the_o strong_a hold_n of_o the_o church_n claim_n 25._o de_fw-fr vera_fw-la relig_n cap._n 25._o saint_n augustine_a also_o in_o another_o place_n say_v since_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v diffuse_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o ground_v neither_o be_v these_o miraculous_a thing_n permit_v to_o endure_v until_o our_o time_n lest_o the_o mind_n shall_v always_o seek_v visible_a thing_n and_o by_o the_o custom_n of_o they_o mankind_n shall_v wax_v cold_a at_o the_o new_a appearance_n whereof_o it_o be_v all_o on_o fire_n 27.11_o mor._n lib._n 27.11_o and_o saint_n gregory_n say_v most_o plain_o what_o marvel_n be_v it_o if_o the_o faith_n be_v propagate_v miracle_n be_v not_o oft_o do_v since_o even_o the_o very_a apostle_n in_o many_o which_o be_v already_o faithful_a do_v not_o do_v they_o neither_o be_v isidorus_n any_o whit_n discordant_a from_o saint_n augustine_n above_o recite_v who_o seem_v to_o insinuate_v as_o much_o in_o these_o word_n miracle_n be_v a_o sign_n bono_fw-mi isidor_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la summo_fw-la bono_fw-mi not_o necessary_a for_o the_o faithful_a who_o now_o have_v believe_v but_o to_o the_o unfaithful_a that_o they_o may_v be_v convert_v for_o paul_n for_o the_o infidelity_n of_o not_o believer_n cure_v the_o father_n of_o publius_n by_o miracle_n from_o the_o infirmity_n of_o a_o ague_n but_o sick_a timothy_n who_o be_v a_o faithful_a not_o by_o prayer_n but_o medicinal_o that_o thou_o may_v know_v miracle_n to_o be_v do_v not_o for_o the_o unfaithful_a but_o for_o the_o faithful_a so_o i_o find_v didacus_n de_fw-fr la_fw-fr vega_n not_o to_o swerve_v much_o from_o this_o doctrine_n 39_o conc._n quadrag_v feria_fw-la 4._o post_fw-la primam_fw-la dominicam_fw-la quadrag_n matth._n 12._o vers_fw-la 39_o who_o upon_o these_o word_n generatio_fw-la male_a &_o adultera_fw-la signum_fw-la quaerit_fw-la &_o signum_fw-la non_fw-la dabitur_fw-la ei_fw-la nisi_fw-la signum_fw-la jonae_fw-la prophetae_fw-la a_o evil_a and_o adulterous_a generation_n seek_v a_o sign_n but_o no_o sign_n shall_v be_v give_v unto_o it_o save_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o prophet_n jonas_n say_v the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n approach_v unto_o christ_n to_o require_v sign_n and_o wonder_n from_o heaven_n by_o the_o which_o he_o shall_v show_v himself_o the_o true_a messiah_n promise_v in_o the_o law_n who_o he_o reprehend_v with_o sharp_a word_n and_o confound_v they_o call_v they_o a_o evil_a and_o adulterous_a generation_n and_o their_o demand_n require_v no_o mild_a word_n but_o be_v worthy_a of_o such_o a_o answer_n for_o the_o come_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n into_o the_o world_n be_v not_o so_o hide_v but_o that_o it_o be_v prevent_v many_o age_n before_o and_o announce_v by_o the_o heavenly_a oracle_n of_o the_o prophet_n whereupon_o i_o observe_v that_o if_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharsy_n be_v reprehend_v so_o severe_o for_o require_v sign_n from_o heaven_n because_o they_o have_v christ_n foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n then_o can_v i_o not_o but_o assure_v myself_o that_o the_o follower_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v worthy_a of_o as_o great_a a_o reprehension_n even_o of_o the_o same_o nature_n of_o adulterous_a generation_n that_o after_o the_o faith_n so_o long_o plant_v and_o begin_v with_o miracle_n and_o confirm_v by_o antiquity_n boast_v so_o much_o on_o their_o own_o miracle_n and_o strange_a wonder_n doctor_n stapleton_n upon_o these_o word_n of_o christ_n 5._o job._n 4._o prompt_a mor._n dom._n 20._o post_fw-la pent._n soco_fw-la 5._o nisi_fw-la signa_fw-la &_o prodigia_fw-la viderit_fw-la be_v not_o creditis_fw-la unless_o you_o see_v sign_n and_o wonder_n you_o believe_v not_o have_v these_o word_n worthy_a of_o note_n and_o observation_n the_o ruler_n be_v check_v because_o that_o be_v bring_v up_o among_o the_o jew_n and_o instruct_v in_o the_o law_n he_o will_v not_o believe_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o sign_n but_o expect_v the_o extreme_a danger_n of_o his_o son_n that_o he_o may_v see_v a_o sign_n this_o be_v a_o incredultie_n almost_o common_a to_o all_o the_o jew_n which_o in_o another_o place_n christ_n tax_v most_o sharp_o for_o certain_a of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n come_v unto_o he_o and_o say_v master_n we_o will_v see_v a_o sign_n of_o thou_o 12._o matth._n 12._o answer_v he_o say_v unto_o they_o 16._o matth._n 16._o a_o wicked_a and_o adulterous_a generation_n ask_v a_o sign_n which_o word_n again_o he_o answer_v at_o another_o time_n when_o the_o sadducee_n empt_v he_o in_o like_a manner_n and_o call_v they_o a_o wicked_a and_o a_o adulterous_a generation_n which_o seek_v sign_n because_o they_o do_v evil_a in_o tempt_a god_n and_o such_o a_o evil_n be_v this_o that_o they_o show_v their_o soul_n not_o to_o be_v the_o true_a spouse_n of_o god_n by_o faith_n but_o adulterous_a friend_n of_o transitory_a thing_n for_o even_o as_o a_o wife_n which_o true_o love_v her_o husband_n desire_v not_o to_o see_v any_o extraordinary_a sign_n of_o her_o husband_n love_n towards_o she_o as_o that_o her_o husband_n shall_v as_o it_o be_v cast_v himself_o into_o the_o fire_n or_o water_n for_o his_o wife_n sake_n but_o rest_v content_v with_o that_o true_a internal_a love_n which_o he_o carry_v she_o and_o the_o common_a external_a sign_n of_o a_o husband_n love_n towards_o she_o so_o the_o faithful_a soul_n which_o by_o faith_n and_o charity_n be_v espouse_v unto_o her_o god_n if_o she_o be_v such_o a_o one_o do_v see_v so_o many_o sign_n in_o herself_o the_o love_n of_o god_n so_o vehement_a and_o sincere_a so_o many_o embrace_n of_o god_n love_n towards_o she_o so_o many_o and_o frequent_a sweetness_n from_o above_o so_o many_o daily_a grace_n favour_n and_o benefit_n last_o that_o peace_n of_o her_o god_n which_o pass_v all_o understanding_n that_o to_o seek_v other_o sign_n for_o confirmation_n of_o her_o faith_n in_o god_n or_o the_o charity_n of_o god_n towards_o she_o she_o esteem_v it_o not_o only_o idle_a but_o also_o most_o impious_a for_o as_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o chaste_a love_n to_o cleave_v only_o to_o god_n so_o be_v it_o the_o sign_n of_o a_o adulterous_a soul_n in_o slippery_a thing_n to_o seek_v external_a sign_n further_o as_o the_o ancient_a jew_n be_v content_v with_o the_o sign_n of_o their_o elder_n do_v in_o the_o desert_n in_o the_o red_a sea_n on_o mount_n sina_n 32._o deut._n 32._o in_o the_o passage_n of_o jordan_n according_a to_o that_o interroga_fw-la patres_fw-la tuos_fw-la &_o dicent_fw-la tibi_fw-la ask_v thy_o father_n and_o they_o will_v tell_v thou_o so_o the_o jew_n when_o christ_n teach_v and_o all_o christian_n at_o this_o day_n must_v be_v content_v with_o the_o old_a sign_n either_o typical_o do_v before_o christ_n come_n of_o which_o it_o be_v not_o fit_v the_o jew_n shall_v be_v ignorant_a and_o chief_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n and_o the_o prince_n of_o the_o people_n among_o which_o this_o ruler_n seem_v to_o be_v one_o or_o perform_v by_o christ_n himself_o which_o be_v sufficient_a for_o our_o faith_n therefore_o all_o this_o curiosity_n and_o show_v of_o incredulity_n and_o fornication_n from_o god_n be_v worthy_o tax_v by_o christ_n either_o in_o this_o ruler_n or_o in_o the_o stander_n by_o or_o in_o both_o who_o heart_n he_o see_v by_o which_o lobserue_v how_o worthy_a of_o reprehension_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v which_o for_o confirmation_n of_o her_o doctrine_n even_o until_o his_o day_n stand_v still_o upon_o miracle_n as_o
great_a and_o more_o in_o number_n then_o ever_o before_o well_o she_o may_v be_v term_v wicked_a and_o adulterous_a herein_o if_o when_o i_o consider_v what_o strange_a yea_o and_o often_o ridiculous_a miracle_n she_o pretend_v not_o only_o to_o justify_v falsehood_n sin_n and_o impiety_n but_o also_o by_o they_o to_o commend_v the_o actor_n of_o they_o before_o all_o ancient_a saint_n 6_o whereof_o i_o will_v now_o gentle_a reader_n give_v thou_o a_o taste_n by_o some_o few_o precedent_n happen_v in_o these_o latter_a age_n of_o the_o world_n rome_n example_n of_o false_a miracle_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o the_o book_n and_o public_a writing_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v leave_v record_v to_o the_o world_n which_o as_o they_o move_v i_o to_o see_v my_o own_o former_a over-credulous_a spirit_n so_o have_v they_o not_o strengthen_v i_o in_o the_o true_a faith_n whereunto_o through_o god_n exceed_v great_a mercy_n i_o be_o now_o arrive_v and_o first_o for_o the_o justification_n of_o garnets_n innocence_n in_o the_o business_n of_o the_o powder_n treason_n what_o a_o ridiculous_a invention_n be_v publish_v and_o have_v be_v preach_v to_o the_o world_n by_o costerus_n the_o jesuite_n in_o brussels_n upon_o the_o report_n but_o of_o a_o bare_a letter_n from_o england_n some_o few_o year_n since_o when_o i_o live_v in_o louvain_n of_o a_o certain_a prodigious_a straw_n in_o which_o a_o little_a blood_n have_v make_v such_o a_o lively_a resemblance_n of_o his_o face_n that_o as_o it_o be_v by_o his_o favourer_n report_v and_o with_o my_o own_o ear_n i_o have_v hear_v it_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o stupendous_a miracle_n show_v god_n love_v to_o their_o society_n that_o ever_o happen_v &_o therefore_o since_o that_o time_n one_o m._n john_n wilson_n the_o author_n as_o be_v say_v of_o the_o english_a martirologe_n assume_v unto_o himself_o papal_a jurisdiction_n have_v canonize_v he_o for_o a_o saint_n in_o heaven_n who_o be_v put_v to_o death_n for_o concealment_n of_o treason_n against_o his_o king_n and_o country_n while_o he_o live_v upon_o earth_n indeed_o i_o must_v needs_o confess_v it_o a_o stupendous_a work_n which_o since_o the_o first_o appearance_n thereof_o in_o print_n have_v assume_v not_o only_o one_o but_o diverse_a shape_n for_o first_o at_o louvain_n i_o see_v it_o draw_v with_o three_o horn_n of_o hair_n upon_o his_o head_n over_o his_o forehead_n so_o that_o it_o appear_v more_o like_o a_o monster_n than_o a_o man_n i_o see_v he_o at_o antwerp_n after_o that_o draw_v without_o those_o horn_n yet_o a_o star_n shine_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o his_o forehead_n in_o great_a glory_n of_o which_o kind_n i_o see_v many_o picture_n in_o paper_n tender_v by_o a_o jesuitesse_n woman_n as_o she_o seem_v by_o her_o habit_n and_o carriage_n to_o be_v sell_v as_o the_o chief_a picture_n then_o in_o request_n since_o that_o time_n here_o in_o england_n i_o have_v see_v a_o latin_a book_n in_o which_o another_o miracle_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v have_v be_v add_v unto_o it_o represent_v two_o seraphines_n under_o his_o beard_n as_o it_o be_v hold_v up_o his_o chin_n that_o man_n may_v the_o better_o behold_v his_o glory_n but_o beside_o all_o these_o transformation_n one_o thing_n be_v most_o remarkable_a which_o i_o have_v hear_v report_v by_o diverse_a that_o be_v some_o can_v see_v this_o goodly_a image_n at_o the_o first_o look_v on_o it_o other_o can_fw-mi see_v it_o till_o one_o of_o a_o better_a sight_n oint_n where_o it_o be_v and_o other_o can_v not_o behold_v the_o glory_n thereof_o at_o all_o i_o have_v speak_v with_o some_o of_o those_o three_o kind_n of_o beholder_n who_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o their_o eye_n sight_n have_v tell_v i_o as_o much_o beside_o at_o the_o first_o the_o picture_n of_o this_o miracle_n be_v very_o small_a but_o now_o it_o be_v great_a and_o perhaps_o it_o will_v carry_v yet_o a_o great_a shape_n and_o be_v the_o mother_n of_o miracle_n increase_v to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n and_o so_o surpass_v all_o the_o miracle_n do_v in_o christ_n time_n which_o be_v not_o permanent_a but_o transitory_a about_o which_o if_o a_o man_n shall_v ask_v the_o author_n of_o pruritanus_n that_o monstrous_a and_o athisticall_a libel_n how_o so_o strange_a a_o miracle_n can_v be_v do_v he_o will_v soon_o no_o doubt_n answer_v you_o according_a to_o his_o sacrilegious_a manner_n of_o apply_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n with_o the_o devil_n quia_fw-la scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la &_o maiora_fw-la hijs_fw-la facietis_fw-la which_o word_n saint_n augustine_n expound_v of_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o preacher_n because_o the_o conversion_n of_o sinner_n be_v the_o great_a work_n of_o god_n now_o belove_a reader_n how_o can_v i_o with_o any_o reason_n give_v credit_n to_o this_o miracle_n howsoever_o at_o the_o first_o report_n i_o be_v over-credulous_a when_o i_o observe_v the_o manner_n how_o it_o be_v carry_v and_o if_o such_o reverend_a father_n of_o the_o christian_n world_n will_v stand_v in_o defence_n of_o it_o and_o beknave_n better_a man_n than_o themselves_o without_o regard_n to_o the_o magistracy_n as_o i_o hear_v one_o principal_a father_n do_v in_o brussels_n in_o great_a choler_n &_o indignation_n against_o those_o that_o shall_v gainsay_v it_o i_o may_v belove_v well_o call_v in_o doubt_n &_o enter_v into_o a_o jealous_a suspicion_n of_o many_o other_o strange_a miracle_n devise_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o untruth_n &_o falsehood_n by_o other_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n second_o i_o remember_v a_o other_o strange_a miracle_n have_v it_o not_o prove_v false_a for_o the_o great_a credit_n of_o the_o jesuite_n and_o their_o holysocietie_n in_o persia_n not_o long_o before_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o powder_n treason_n there_o be_v disperse_v by_o they_o among_o some_o of_o their_o catholic_a friend_n here_o in_o england_n a_o little_a pamphlet_n in_o the_o french_a tongue_n report_v the_o miraculous_a conversion_n of_o the_o king_n of_o persia_n persia_n the_o miracle_n of_o persia_n by_o one_o campion_n a_o jesuit_n and_o englishman_n that_o dispossess_v one_o which_o have_v a_o devil_n who_o command_v the_o devil_n at_o his_o departure_n out_o of_o the_o body_n to_o give_v a_o sign_n thereof_o by_o strike_v down_o the_o top_n of_o a_o steeple_n whereupon_o follow_v the_o king_n conversion_n with_o many_o of_o the_o nobility_n to_o the_o roman_a faith_n with_o liberty_n to_o preach_v it_o public_o and_o to_o build_v up_o church_n and_o monastery_n throughout_o all_o his_o dominion_n which_o of_o many_o here_o in_o england_n be_v believe_v to_o be_v true_a especial_o by_o a_o friend_n of_o i_o unto_o who_o that_o pamphlet_n be_v send_v who_o request_v i_o to_o say_v mass_n in_o thankesigue_v to_o god_n for_o so_o great_a a_o benefit_n but_o in_o the_o end_n that_o jesuit_n who_o send_v the_o pamphlet_n give_v out_o that_o it_o be_v but_o a_o thing_n devise_v by_o french_a huguenot_n to_o disgrace_v their_o society_n what_o strange_a devise_n be_v these_o what_o hateful_a illusion_n wherewith_o honest_a sincere_a soul_n be_v make_v gull_n through_o deceitfulnes_n and_o devilish_a policy_n use_v all_o thing_n for_o nothing_o but_o their_o own_o end_n i_o can_v not_o but_o now_o smile_v at_o myself_o to_o remember_v the_o plain_a sincerity_n of_o my_o heart_n in_o believe_v this_o pretty_a invention_n and_o with_o how_o thankful_a a_o mind_n i_o offer_v up_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n with_o a_o tacit_a and_o silent_a wish_n that_o god_n by_o the_o like_a mean_n will_v procure_v the_o conversion_n of_o england_n 7_o three_o rome_n other_o pretend_a miracle_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o will_v not_o omit_v here_o to_o call_v to_o mnind_v two_o strange_a miracle_n invent_v to_o the_o honour_n of_o s._n francis_n that_o people_n may_v be_v the_o more_o excite_a to_o pray_v to_o he_o before_o all_o other_o the_o first_o i_o hear_v preach_v at_o s._n james_n church_n in_o antwerp_n in_o the_o lend_a time_n some_o five_o year_n since_o by_o a_o capuchin_n friar_n and_o affirm_v to_o be_v such_o a_o evident_a truth_n that_o no_o just_a exception_n may_v be_v entertain_v against_o it_o before_o a_o great_a assembly_n and_o confluence_n of_o people_n child_n of_o one_o that_o roast_v her_o child_n with_o many_o particular_a circumstance_n of_o place_n and_o person_n which_o make_v it_o carry_v the_o more_o likeliehood_n of_o truth_n with_o it_o and_o since_o that_o time_n i_o know_v where_o it_o have_v be_v relate_v by_o the_o provincial_n of_o the_o franciscan_n here_o in_o england_n the_o story_n in_o brief_n be_v this_o in_o effect_n a_o certain_a gentlewoman_n there_o be_v in_o a_o town_n in_o sicily_n some_o few_o year_n since_o that_o long_v much_o to_o taste_v of_o
as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n teach_v who_o be_v devote_a much_o to_o the_o virgin_n marie_n pray_v often_o unto_o she_o to_o be_v deliver_v from_o this_o doubt_n who_o be_v one_o day_n at_o mass_n the_o host_n before_o the_o say_n of_o the_o pater_fw-la noster_fw-la be_v go_v out_o of_o his_o sight_n whereof_o as_o he_o be_v in_o a_o great_a amazement_n the_o virgin_n marie_n appear_v unto_o he_o hold_v her_o son_n jesus_n betwixt_o her_o arm_n and_o say_v unto_o he_o this_o be_v he_o who_o i_o bring_v into_o this_o world_n this_o be_v he_o who_o you_o have_v consecrate_v this_o be_v he_o who_o you_o have_v hold_v and_o touch_v with_o your_o hand_n and_o show_v to_o the_o people_n to_o be_v adore_v which_o you_o eat_v and_o drink_v in_o the_o sacrament_n behold_v here_o i_o give_v you_o my_o son_n with_o reverence_n and_o devotion_n to_o be_v receive_v of_o you_o and_o so_o as_o she_o present_v he_o unto_o he_o he_o change_v at_o that_o instant_n again_o into_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n who_o he_o receive_v and_o so_o his_o doubt_n cease_v here_o you_o see_v courteous_a reader_n strange_a miracle_n allege_v by_o the_o papist_n in_o confirmation_n of_o their_o doctrine_n one_o while_o the_o bread_n be_v unseen_a then_o christ_n and_o our_o lady_n and_o then_o again_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n another_o while_n a_o mule_n forsake_v his_o provender_n to_o adore_v god_n in_o the_o sacrament_n whether_o these_o be_v not_o such_o sign_n wonder_n and_o great_a prodigy_n as_o may_v seduce_v the_o elect_a if_o it_o be_v possible_a i_o leave_v to_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o inform_v you_o the_o truth_n say_v nolite_fw-la eye_n credere_fw-la believe_v they_o not_o and_o one_o more_o yet_o i_o will_v relate_v unto_o your_o memory_n which_o have_v be_v wrought_v of_o late_a year_n and_o may_v be_v esteem_v for_o a_o notable_a lie_n 7._o till_o bred._n 7._o col._n sac_n c._n 7._o there_o be_v a_o certain_a caluinist_n that_o marry_v a_o catholic_a woman_n that_o be_v papist_n that_o long_o endeavour_v to_o induce_v she_o to_o hear_v a_o caluinist_n minister_n preach_v the_o wife_n after_o she_o have_v a_o long_a time_n contradict_v he_o be_v at_o last_o constrain_v to_o go_v by_o the_o rigorous_a speech_n and_o threaten_n of_o her_o husband_n yet_o do_v she_o first_o acquaint_v her_o ghostly_a father_n there_o with_o who_o advise_v she_o to_o obey_v the_o commandment_n of_o her_o husband_n and_o to_o go_v only_o once_o to_o the_o say_a sermon_n yet_o with_o condition_n to_o go_v first_o to_o confession_n and_o to_o the_o communion_n the_o woman_n have_v perform_v the_o advice_n of_o her_o ghostly_a father_n strengthen_v with_o the_o sacrament_n go_v to_o the_o sermon_n and_o she_o be_v no_o soon_o enter_v but_o the_o preacher_n become_v as_o silent_a and_o mute_a as_o a_o fish_n yet_o say_v at_o last_o after_o a_o little_a pause_n here_o be_v some_o body_n present_a that_o have_v eat_v of_o the_o bread_n of_o papist_n which_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o i_o will_v now_o give_v over_o preach_v hope_v to_o make_v recompense_v another_o time_n the_o husband_n who_o be_v present_a see_v the_o preacher_n caluinist_n a_o pretty_a fiction_n to_o disgrace_n caluinist_n by_o god_n permission_n to_o become_v silent_a and_o disable_v to_o prosecute_v his_o matter_n for_o the_o presence_n of_o one_o that_o have_v receive_v the_o holy_a communion_n who_o be_v return_v home_o inquire_v of_o his_o wife_n whether_o she_o have_v not_o receive_v the_o communion_n that_o morning_n or_o not_o she_o without_o dissimulation_n answer_v yes_o her_o husband_n sudden_o know_v that_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o caluinist_n be_v false_a and_o accurse_a in_o that_o be_v place_v with_o the_o light_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n it_o wither_v so_o and_o come_v to_o nought_o whereupon_o present_o he_o make_v a_o good_a fire_n burn_v all_o his_o book_n to_o powder_n and_o ash_n and_o become_v himself_o a_o child_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n in_o which_o miracle_n first_o i_o observe_v that_o the_o ghostly_a father_n of_o this_o woman_n give_v her_o leave_n for_o obedience_n to_o her_o husband_n to_o go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o caluinist_n which_o how_o it_o can_v hang_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paul_n the_o fifth_n breve_fw-la who_o show_v it_o unlawful_a for_o english_a catholic_n to_o go_v to_o the_o church_n of_o heretic_n viz._n of_o all_o caluinist_n and_o protestant_n that_o be_v so_o in_o his_o judgement_n unless_o it_o be_v say_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n hold_v one_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n lawful_a at_o one_o time_n that_o be_v not_o lawful_a at_o another_o time_n i_o shall_v be_v glad_a to_o be_v resolve_v but_o this_o i_o observe_v to_o proceed_v from_o god_n providence_n that_o the_o inventor_n of_o these_o and_o the_o like_a miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o doctrine_n in_o one_o point_n do_v often_o in_o some_o circumstance_n or_o other_o show_v such_o ignorance_n or_o falsehood_n that_o discover_v they_o either_o not_o to_o approve_v the_o matter_n they_o intend_v or_o else_o run_v into_o some_o other_o error_n less_o tolerable_a show_v they_o most_o plain_o to_o be_v such_o sign_n and_o wonder_n as_o christ_n give_v a_o caveat_n of_o they_o not_o to_o be_v believe_v many_o other_o miracle_n i_o may_v here_o insert_v but_o that_o i_o will_v not_o be_v too_o tedious_a in_o such_o idle_a tale_n fit_a to_o be_v tell_v among_o child_n as_o fable_n than_o to_o any_o man_n of_o more_o ripe_a judgement_n yet_o be_v they_o among_o the_o clergy_n of_o rome_n of_o such_o account_n that_o their_o sermonist_n be_v stuff_v with_o they_o as_o may_v be_v observe_v in_o jacobus_n de_fw-la voragine_fw-la johannes_n meff_n bernard_n de_fw-fr bust_v philippus_n die_v and_o many_o the_o like_a and_o be_v hold_v more_o profitable_a for_o the_o people_n than_o any_o other_o manner_n of_o doctrine_n yet_o i_o observe_v one_o thing_n by_o read_v of_o their_o life_n of_o saint_n that_o many_o miracle_n which_o be_v authentical_a for_o many_o hundred_o year_n past_a be_v now_o grow_v to_o be_v apocryphal_a as_o may_v be_v see_v by_o compare_v the_o ancient_a life_n of_o s._n george_n s._n katherine_n the_o queen_n and_o other_o with_o they_o as_o they_o be_v of_o late_a year_n correct_v and_o write_v by_o lipeloo_n follow_v baronius_n and_o other_o writer_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n 12_o now_o therefore_o to_o draw_v near_o my_o conclusion_n miracle_n my_o conclusion_n about_o miracle_n what_o fruit_n can_v i_o better_o gather_v upon_o the_o due_a observation_n of_o christ_n warning_n unto_o the_o world_n not_o to_o believe_v such_o miracle_n than_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n that_o either_o wink_v or_o authorise_v infinite_a number_n in_o the_o same_o nature_n as_o these_o be_v of_o which_o i_o have_v already_o record_v out_o of_o her_o own_o writer_n for_o which_o cause_n i_o can_v not_o but_o abandon_v her_o communion_n and_o fly_v to_o that_o church_n which_o like_o a_o faithful_a spouse_n rest_v content_v with_o the_o former_a miracle_n where_o with_o christ_n church_n be_v begin_v and_o chief_o rely_v upon_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n yet_o be_v not_o my_o opinion_n in_o this_o point_n of_o miracle_n so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o that_o i_o do_v think_v no_o true_a miracle_n at_o all_o shall_v ever_o be_v do_v in_o the_o decline_a age_n of_o god_n church_n but_o i_o will_v have_v it_o know_v that_o my_o judgement_n be_v that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v do_v in_o confirmation_n of_o new_a doctrine_n not_o teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n not_o know_v to_o the_o ancient_a church_n because_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o christ_n have_v forbid_v all_o belief_n of_o they_o and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v esteem_v of_o otherwise_o than_o as_o of_o illusion_n of_o satan_n wherewith_o to_o enchant_v soul_n and_o to_o make_v they_o believe_v lie_n in_o stead_n of_o truth_n and_o verity_n oh_o what_o a_o misery_n be_v it_o to_o see_v how_o many_o simple_a sincere_a and_o over-credulous_a christian_n be_v cozen_v with_o these_o deceit_n and_o illusion_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o the_o true_a mark_n of_o antichrist_n let_v i_o therefore_o entreat_v thou_o courteous_a reader_n to_o remember_v the_o prediction_n of_o these_o sign_n and_o wonder_n above_o mention_v forspeak_v of_o by_o christ_n s._n paul_n and_o s._n john_n and_o not_o so_o fond_o to_o be_v lead_v blindfolded_a to_o the_o eternal_a destruction_n of_o thy_o soul_n by_o too_o much_o credulity_n be_v not_o like_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisy_n seek_v after_o sign_n from_o heaven_n for_o the_o faith_n lest_o you_o
many_o other_o which_o i_o have_v before_o in_o the_o nine_o chapter_n show_v not_o to_o be_v ancient_a and_o consequent_o heretical_a because_o they_o be_v new_a and_o aftercome_v into_o the_o church_n 7_o again_o doctrine_n the_o corrupt_a and_o rot_a fruit_n of_o romish_a doctrine_n when_o i_o consider_v further_o the_o second_o way_n to_o judge_v of_o false_a prophet_n by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o stapleton_n teach_v by_o the_o proper_a fruit_n of_o their_o doctrine_n i_o find_v also_o by_o this_o way_n the_o fruit_n of_o roman_a teacher_n to_o be_v most_o corrupt_a and_o rot_a issue_v forth_o of_o their_o doctrine_n for_o what_o proceed_v from_o their_o dogmatic_a teach_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o stew_n toleration_n but_o too_o unrefrain_v a_o licence_n and_o liberty_n of_o sin_v to_o all_o that_o be_v loose_o affect_v what_o great_a incentive_a to_o sin_n can_v there_o be_v for_o lascivious_a person_n than_o assurance_n of_o place_n and_o person_n where_o conveniency_n and_o consent_n may_v assure_o be_v expect_v or_o what_o great_a occasion_n to_o young_a person_n prodigal_o to_o spend_v their_o temporal_a substance_n and_o ruin_v their_o soul_n then_o grant_v of_o such_o open_a passage_n to_o si●_n what_o can_v more_o encourage_v poor_a mind_n to_o be_v dishonest_a than_o permission_n to_o get_v themselves_o living_n by_o dishonesty_n as_o also_o what_o can_v more_o demonstrate_v the_o pope_n covetousness_n and_o insatiable_a avarice_n than_o the_o permission_n of_o such_o offender_n pay_v yearly_a tribute_n unto_o he_o for_o the_o free_a exercise_n of_o all_o filthy_a abomination_n again_o what_o proceed_v from_o the_o prohibition_n of_o priest_n marriage_n but_o infinite_a and_o almost_o innumerable_a sin_n against_o nature_n as_o bestiality_n sodomy_n unnatural_a evacuation_n incest_n adultery_n fornication_n sacrilege_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o abomination_n which_o abound_v in_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n while_o that_o lawful_a wedlock_n and_o honourable_a bed_n which_o saint_n paul_n call_v undefiled_a may_v not_o be_v permit_v nor_o commend_v without_o imputation_n of_o incontinency_n sacrilege_n and_o filthy_a pollution_n which_o be_v true_o the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n as_o saint_n paul_n term_v it_o i_o omit_v to_o speak_v how_o many_o virgin_n have_v be_v deflower_v how_o many_o matron_n dishonour_v how_o many_o monastcry_n pervert_v how_o many_o good_a husband_n wrong_v how_o many_o widow_n abuse_v how_o many_o wilful_a abortment_n how_o many_o slaughter_n of_o child_n and_o other_o foul_a abomination_n commit_v by_o unmarried_a priest_n therefore_o though_o chastity_n and_o single_a life_n be_v both_o high_o commendable_a and_o profitable_a to_o he_o that_o have_v the_o gift_n to_o live_v so_o yet_o the_o restraint_n thereof_o have_v more_o disgrace_v the_o church_n of_o god_n then_o almost_o any_o one_o point_n whatsoever_o make_v even_o sacred_a thing_n to_o appear_v to_o the_o world_n deform_v and_o full_a of_o such_o blemish_n as_o will_v never_o be_v take_v away_o i_o have_v observe_v further_o also_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o pardon_n for_o the_o release_n of_o temporal_a pain_n due_a to_o fin_n either_o in_o this_o life_n or_o in_o purgatory_n annex_v unto_o grain_n medal_n cross_n ring_n and_o the_o like_a paltry_a thing_n which_o be_v a_o doctrine_n most_o currant_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v serve_v for_o the_o root_n &_o offpring_n of_o much_o covetousness_n and_o avarice_n of_o much_o loss_n of_o time_n unprofitable_o of_o simony_n in_o sell_v mass_n which_o be_v count_v sacred_a thing_n for_o money_n of_o neglect_v to_o pray_v for_o the_o live_n while_o so_o many_o dirge_n mass_n funeral_n trental_n and_o aniversary_n be_v say_v for_o the_o dead_a without_o fruit_n or_o profit_n nay_o how_o far_o do_v pope_n gregory_n mag._n lipeloo_n in_o vita_fw-la greg._n mag._n style_v the_o great_a proceed_v in_o the_o vanity_n of_o this_o doctrine_n while_o he_o pray_v not_o for_o decease_a christian_n only_o but_o for_o a_o damn_a pagan_n who_o as_o it_o be_v fabulous_o write_v in_o his_o life_n and_o have_v pass_v currant_n these_o many_o hundred_o year_n deliver_v the_o soul_n of_o trajan_n the_o emperor_n out_o of_o hell_n fire_n by_o his_o prayer_n which_o have_v hitherto_o be_v obtrude_v unto_o the_o christian_a world_n for_o a_o especial_a favour_n show_v by_o god_n unto_o that_o pope_n which_o shall_v never_o be_v show_v unto_o any_o other_o be_v not_o these_o goodly_a illusion_n of_o the_o world_n &_o most_o abominable_a abuse_n of_o religion_n grow_v up_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n enamel_v with_o zealous_a and_o charitable_a pretence_n while_o such_o tale_n must_v set_v forth_o this_o pope_n worth_n and_o be_v believe_v and_o the_o holy_a scripture_n teach_v no_o remission_n after_o this_o life_n must_v not_o be_v of_o any_o credit_n at_o all_o i_o have_v note_v many_o evil_a branch_n to_o rise_v out_o also_o from_o another_o root_n of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o confi_v in_o teach_v man_n to_o pray_v to_o saint_n how_o much_o god_n glory_n thereby_o be_v take_v from_o he_o be_v apparent_a to_o any_o man_n of_o experience_n &_o travail_n who_o have_v see_v &_o observe_v how_o much_o the_o outward_a solemnity_n of_o saint_n day_n do_v excel_v the_o solemnity_n of_o sunday_n which_o be_v the_o feast_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o have_v observe_v many_o more_o church_n dedicate_v to_o they_o then_o to_o god_n himself_o that_o have_v note_v the_o ordinary_a common_a prayer_n of_o lay-man_n to_o be_v call_v our_o lady_n office_n while_o they_o have_v none_o at_o all_o make_v in_o honour_n of_o the_o holy_a trinity_n or_o of_o the_o father_n or_o the_o son_n only_o a_o short_a one_o they_o have_v in_o honour_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n &_o another_o of_o the_o cross_n yet_o not_o free_a from_o superstition_n &_o idolatry_n whilst_o they_o pray_v mat._n officium_fw-la sanctae_fw-la crucis_fw-la ad_fw-la mat._n by_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cress_n to_o be_v deliver_v from_o their_o enemy_n while_o they_o attribute_v the_o victory_n christ_n get_v upon_o the_o cross_n to_o the_o cross_n itself_o say_v o_o victory_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o admirable_a sign_n cause_v we_o to_o hold_v our_o triumph_n in_o the_o heavenly_a court_n again_o antipho_n antipho_n by_o a_o tree_n we_o be_v make_v bondman_n &_o by_o the_o holy_a cross_n we_o be_v set_v free_a the_o fruit_n of_o the_o tree_n seduce_v we_o the_o son_n of_o god_n redeem_v us._n and_o again_o o_o bless_a cross_n etc._n etc._n sweet_a wood_n sweet_a nail_n etc._n etc._n not_o antipho_n add_v not_o again_o o_o venerable_a cross_n which_o have_v bring_v salvation_n to_o wretch_n by_o what_o praise_n shall_v i_o extol_v thou_o for_o that_o thou_o have_v prepare_v unto_o we_o thy_o heavenly_a life_n again_o speak_v to_o christ_n by_o thy_o holy_a cross_n thou_o have_v redeem_v the_o world_n etc._n etc._n all_o which_o in_o my_o judgement_n seem_v very_a derogatory_n to_o god_n glory_n as_o tend_v to_o a_o divine_a worship_n of_o the_o creature_n for_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o thus_o in_o their_o excessive_a devotion_n to_o saint_n and_o creature_n they_o have_v little_a feel_n or_o understand_v of_o the_o true_a love_n and_o devotion_n they_o shall_v feel_v and_o show_v to_o their_o creator_n 8_o when_o moreover_o i_o consider_v how_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n free_v the_o clergy_n from_o true_a obedience_n to_o temporal_a prince_n doctrine_n other_o instance_n of_o the_o corrupt_a fruit_n of_o romish_a doctrine_n by_o their_o immunity_n it_o pretend_v they_o enjoy_v even_o by_o god_n law_n and_o great_a privilege_n free_v from_o civil_a court_n &_o government_n i_o find_v here_o a_o open_a gap_n make_v to_o all_o busy_a head_n &_o tumultuous_a spirit_n to_o say_v &_o think_v &_o do_v what_o they_o listen_v against_o the_o sacred_a authority_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n confirm_v by_o god_n himself_o but_o withal_o when_o i_o add_v the_o doctrine_n now_o so_o much_o teach_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o her_o false_a prophet_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n and_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n from_o god_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n to_o depose_v emperor_n king_n and_o prince_n from_o their_o regal_a dignity_n &_o kingdom_n in_o the_o execution_n whereof_o the_o pope_n himself_o as_o the_o head_n of_o christianity_n will_v be_v the_o chief_a judge_n &_o commander_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n i_o find_v all_o the_o wall_n &_o defence_n of_o security_n for_o king_n shake_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o door_n let_v open_a to_o the_o wicked_a intention_n &_o designment_n of_o factious_a spirit_n to_o plot_n against_o king_n and_o to_o subvert_v kingdom_n with_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n free_a from_o all_o scruple_n or_o remorse_n hence_o and_o from_o no_o other_o spring_n arise_v so_o much_o contempt_n in_o the_o
roman_a teacher_n by_o the_o fruit_n of_o their_o life_n to_o see_v whether_o by_o they_o also_o they_o can_v be_v find_v such_o as_o christ_n speak_v of_o to_o be_v avoid_v church_n other_o fruit_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o albeit_o i_o have_v already_o in_o the_o former_a chapter_n allege_v much_o in_o declaration_n of_o their_o hypocrisy_n it_o be_v here_o not_o amiss_o to_o consider_v also_o somewhat_o of_o other_o their_o fruit_n and_o first_o to_o begin_v with_o ambition_n &_o bribery_n i_o find_v that_o platina_n on_o damasus_n 2._o note_v that_o the_o custom_n grow_v that_o any_o ambitious_a fellow_n may_v invade_v s._n peter_n seat_n and_o that_o of_o boniface_n 8._o the_o say_n be_v damas_n t●latin_n in_o vita_fw-la damas_n that_o he_o enter_v like_o a_o fox_n reign_v like_o a_o lion_n and_o die_v like_o a_o dog_n 8._o vita_fw-la bonis_fw-la 8._o i_o find_v also_o that_o johannes_n saresburiensis_n observe_v long_o ago_o that_o it_o pass_v strive_v for_o the_o popedom_n they_o fight_v for_o it_o ambitious_a man_n enter_v into_o the_o holy_a place_n 23_o pol._n lib._n 8._o cap._n 23_o not_o without_o their_o brother_n blood_n i_o sinde_v further_o that_o platina_n speak_v of_o the_o come_n of_o silvester_n 3._o to_o the_o popedom_n say_v 3._o vita_fw-la silu_a 3._o at_o that_o time_n it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o he_o which_o most_o prevail_v not_o in_o learn_v ning_n and_o holy_a life_n but_o in_o aribery_n and_o ambition_n even_o he_o alone_o obtain_v the_o papacy_n good_a man_n be_v oppress_v and_o reject_v i_o find_v also_o that_o caesar_n baronius_n entreat_v of_o the_o pope_n that_o succeed_v in_o the_o nine_o age_n tell_v how_o about_o the_o 908._o theodora_n a_o noble_a woman_n but_o a_o notable_a strumpet_n of_o great_a beauty_n and_o excellent_a wit_n by_o keep_v company_n with_o adelbert_n the_o marquesse_n of_o tuscia_n by_o who_o also_o she_o have_v certain_a daughter_n 6._o anno_fw-la 908._o nu_fw-la 6._o get_v the_o monarchy_n of_o the_o city_n into_o her_o hand_n and_o prostitute_v her_o daughter_n unto_o the_o pope_n invader_n of_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n and_o to_o the_o marquess_n of_o tuscia_n thereby_o the_o command_n of_o those_o strumpet_n so_o increase_v that_o at_o their_o pleasure_n they_o remove_v the_o pope_n that_o be_v lawful_o create_v and_o thrust_v violent_a and_o mischievous_a man_n into_o their_o room_n 8_o anno_fw-la 912._o nu_fw-la 8_o i_o also_o find_v moreover_o that_o the_o famous_a ecclesiastical_a writer_n make_v great_a complaint_n for_o the_o miserable_a face_n of_o the_o church_n at_o that_o time_n say_v how_o filthy_a be_v the_o face_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n then_o when_o most_o powerful_a and_o withal_o most_o sordid_a whore_n bear_v all_o the_o sway_n at_o rome_n at_o who_o lust_n sea_n be_v change_v bishop_n be_v give_v and_o that_o which_o be_v horrible_a and_o not_o to_o be_v utter_v who_o lover_n the_o false_a pope_n be_v thrust_v into_o the_o seat_n of_o peter_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v write_v in_o the_o cathologue_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n but_o for_o the_o note_n of_o such_o time_n for_o who_o may_v say_v they_o be_v lawful_a pope_n which_o be_v thus_o without_o right_a thrust_n in_o by_o such_o strumpet_n no_o where_o we_o find_v any_o mention_n of_o clergy_n choose_v or_o give_v consent_n afterward_o all_o canon_n be_v put_v to_o silence_n the_o pontifical_a decree_n be_v choke_v ancient_a tradition_n proscribe_v and_o the_o old_a custom_n sacred_a rite_n and_o former_a use_n in_o choose_v the_o high_a bishop_n utter_o extinguish_v thus_o have_v lust_n get_v every_o thing_n to_o it_o own_o hand_n by_o who_o complaint_n i_o observe_v not_o only_o the_o lasciviousness_n of_o those_o pope_n but_o also_o that_o there_o be_v no_o right_a pope_n no_o continue_a succession_n of_o chief_a bishop_n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o strong_a ground_n the_o teacher_n of_o rome_n do_v build_v upon_o nor_o consequent_o no_o visible_a head_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o earth_n for_o that_o this_o abuse_v continue_v almost_o 200._o year_n together_o discontinuance_n of_o time_n 8._o sigon_n de_fw-fr reg_fw-la ital._n a_o 1046._o lib._n 8._o &_o unlawfulness_n of_o entrance_n interrupt_v the_o succession_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n most_o insolent_o brag_v of_o i_o find_v diverse_a example_n record_v by_o good_a writer_n of_o such_o apostatical_a pope_n as_o show_v they_o be_v false_a teacher_n even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o such_o writer_n as_o be_v high_o esteem_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n who_o know_v not_o that_o benet_n the_o nine_o be_v a_o child_n about_o ten_o year_n old_a 928._o baron_fw-fr a_fw-fr 103._o baron_fw-fr a_o 955._o num_fw-la 2.3_o plat._n &_o baron_n ann_n 908._o nu_fw-la 1._o baron_fw-fr a_o 912._o num_fw-la 7._o baron_fw-fr a_o 928._o that_o john_n the_o thirteen_o be_v a_o mad_a lad_n eighteen_o year_n old_a at_o the_o most_o that_o sergius_n the_o three_o enter_v violent_o cast_v out_o his_o predecessor_n christopher_n imprison_v he_o with_o band_n till_o he_o drive_v he_o to_o turn_v friar_n and_o so_o to_o end_v his_o day_n john_n the_o eleven_o be_v create_v pope_n by_o theodora_n and_o violent_o intrude_v for_o his_o filthy_a love_n afterward_o her_o daughter_n marozia_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n expel_v he_o and_o cause_v he_o to_o be_v imprison_v where_o he_o be_v smother_v to_o death_n 1._o baron_fw-fr a_o 928._o num_fw-la 2._o baron_fw-fr a_o 931._o num_fw-la 1._o leo_fw-la the_o sixth_o succeed_v he_o and_o he_o also_o be_v imprison_v and_o die_v the_o next_o but_o one_o be_v john_n the_o twelve_o he_o be_v bastard_n to_o sergius_n by_o madam_n marozia_n and_o be_v yet_o but_o a_o stripling_n be_v violent_o put_v into_o the_o popedom_n by_o his_o mother_n and_o her_o husband_n uvido_z the_o marquesse_n the_o next_o pope_n but_o one_o be_v stephen_n 1._o baron_fw-fr a_o 940._o num_fw-la 1._o choose_v by_o the_o roman_n without_o the_o cardinal_n consent_n john_n the_o thirteen_o another_o boy_n be_v make_v pope_n by_o the_o faction_n of_o albericus_n his_o father_n 4._o baron_fw-fr 9.55_o num_fw-la 4._o when_o for_o his_o age_n he_o be_v not_o yet_o capable_a of_o the_o order_n of_o a_o deacon_n in_o the_o end_n his_o bishop_n forsake_v he_o 11_o luitpr_fw-la li._n 6._o c._n 11_o and_o one_o night_n as_o he_o be_v in_o bed_n with_o a_o man_n wife_n the_o devil_n strike_v he_o and_o he_o die_v about_o ten_o year_n after_o benet_n the_o sixth_o be_v imprison_v and_o murder_v by_o boniface_n that_o succeed_v he_o who_o get_v the_o popedom_n by_o violence_n 974._o baron_fw-fr a_o 974._o &_o be_v again_o himself_o as_o violent_o depose_v 1_o anno_fw-la 275._o nu_fw-la 1_o and_o john_n the_o fifteen_o put_v in_o his_o room_n but_o he_o return_v again_o and_o apprehend_v john_n imprison_v and_o murder_v he_o 1._o anno_fw-la 985._o nu_fw-la 1._o baronius_n say_v of_o he_o he_o be_v a_o villain_n and_o a_o thief_n the_o murderer_n of_o two_o pope_n the_o invader_n of_o peter_n chair_n who_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o hair_n of_o a_o roman_a bishop_n whether_o we_o consider_v his_o entrance_n or_o go_v forward_o but_o deserve_v to_o be_v reckon_v among_o famous_a thief_n and_o ransaker_n of_o their_o country_n such_o as_o be_v sylla_n and_o catiline_n all_o who_o may_v cast_v their_o cap_n at_o this_o thief_n by_o all_o which_o fruit_n i_o be_v much_o divert_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n former_a yet_o other_o fruit_n as_o bad_a as_o the_o former_a beside_o the_o great_a schism_n that_o have_v be_v among_o the_o pope_n be_v fruit_n by_o which_o they_o may_v well_o be_v know_v for_o false_a prophet_n wherein_o there_o have_v be_v two_o or_o three_o pope_n at_o once_o i_o find_v about_o the_o year_n 1044._o benet_n the_o nine_o 7._o baron_fw-fr a_o 1044._o num_fw-la 1.2.5_o naucl_n vol._n 2._o gener_fw-la 35._o onup_n in_o greg._n 6._o theod._n in_o niem_n lib._n 1._o ca._n 7._o silvester_n the_o 3._o and_o john_n be_v all_o pope_n at_o once_o and_o make_v their_o abode_n in_o 3._o several_a place_n of_o the_o city_n divide_v among_o they_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o patriarchy_n until_o gregory_n the_o 6._o hire_v they_o with_o money_n to_o give_v over_o himself_o be_v create_v the_o four_o pope_n and_o be_v present_o expel_v again_o and_o clement_n ordain_v again_o about_o the_o year_n 1379._o begin_v the_o schism_n between_o vrban_n and_o clement_n which_o end_v not_o till_o seventy_o year_n after_o at_o the_o first_o there_o be_v two_o pope_n together_o the_o one_o in_o italy_n the_o other_o in_o france_n 47._o naucleer_n col_fw-fr 2._o gener_fw-la 46._o joh._n moium_n de_fw-mi reb_fw-mi hisp_n l._n 18._o c._n 1_o naucl._n go_v 47._o what_o time_n the_o most_o learned_a man_n alive_a can_v not_o
of_o christ_n already_o sacrifice_v who_o once_o have_v wrought_v redemption_n and_o propitiation_n for_o sin_n which_o be_v to_o be_v apply_v by_o the_o sacrament_n 4._o 2._o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n a_o novel_a doctrine_n praeceptor_n romae_fw-la desacr_n miss_n c._n 1_o dict_z 2._o in_o can_v not_o but_o marvel_v that_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n can_v be_v esteem_v so_o high_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v as_o they_o say_v and_o teach_v a_o sacrifice_n that_o be_v perfect_v and_o consist_v of_o christ_n as_o the_o thing_n offer_v and_o chief_o of_o three_o action_n the_o consecration_n the_o oblation_n and_o consumption_n which_o say_v the_o same_o author_n concern_v the_o substance_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n 1._o ibid._n dicto_fw-la 1._o concern_v the_o action_n as_o it_o be_v now_o do_v by_o the_o church_n for_o if_o we_o look_v well_o into_o it_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o but_o a_o novel_a doctrine_n in_o all_o the_o essential_a part_n thereof_o it_o begin_v not_o all_o at_o once_o but_o by_o degree_n for_o the_o latin_a language_n come_v not_o in_o where_o the_o people_n understand_v it_o till_o the_o time_n of_o gregory_n six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n provis_fw-la declarat_fw-la ad_fw-la censar_n theol._n provis_fw-la as_o erasmus_n say_v the_o church_n in_o former_a time_n use_v the_o service_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n the_o doctrine_n likewise_o of_o transubstantiation_n now_o believe_v by_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n 628._o tom._n 3._o do_v 5._o sect_n 1._o p._n 628._o to_o be_v therein_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o scotus_n and_o biel_n to_o be_v no_o elder_a than_o the_o council_n of_o laternae_fw-la for_o so_o suares_n the_o jesuite_n write_v of_o they_o the_o sacrifice_n or_o oblation_n think_v by_o some_o to_o be_v make_v therein_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o learned_a papist_n be_v not_o do_v by_o christ_n for_o azorius_fw-la the_o jesuit_n write_v 8._o jnstit_fw-la moral_a lib._n 10._o cap._n 8._o that_o some_o catholic_n deny_v that_o christ_n offer_v up_o himself_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n which_o be_v true_a indeed_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o such_o a_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o found_v upon_o christ_n deed_n or_o institute_v by_o he_o but_o upon_o some_o late_a invention_n since_o he_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o joannes_n stephanus_n durantus_n do_v teach_v most_o unsound_a doctrine_n 2._o de_fw-fr ritibus_fw-la eccl._n ●●ath_n cap._n 3._o n._n 1._o &_o 2._o when_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v perspicuous_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o christ_n himself_o of_o paul_n the_o apostle_n and_o of_o ancient_a father_n that_o christ_n instuute_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o be_v the_o author_n thereof_o who_o also_o after_o he_o have_v cite_v the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n luke_n the_o 21._o and_o 1._o cor._n 11._o upon_o those_o word_n do_v you_o this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o he_o conclude_v that_o by_o those_o word_n christ_n give_v a_o commandment_n of_o sacrifice_v unto_o priest_n mass_n a_o notorious_a shift_n of_o a_o learned_a papist_n to_o prove_v the_o mass_n for_o to_o do_v signify_v to_o sacrifice_v but_o in_o very_a truth_n whosoever_o be_v not_o most_o stupid_a may_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o both_o place_n evince_v the_o contrary_a and_o discern_v what_o a_o gross_a absurdity_n it_o be_v to_o enforce_v that_o because_o to_o do_v sometime_o do_v signify_v to_o sacrifice_n therefore_o christ_n command_v the_o priest_n to_o sacrifice_n for_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o there_o christ_n commandment_n to_o do_v this_o import_v a_o command_n to_o sacrifice_n where_o then_o be_v the_o sacrament_n institute_v which_o be_v a_o distinct_a thing_n from_o a_o sacrifice_n many_o such_o shift_n as_o these_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n enforce_v to_o under-take_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o their_o doctrine_n which_o if_o man_n will_v observe_v with_o attention_n and_o judgement_n they_o may_v with_o very_o great_a facility_n discover_v the_o weak_a ground_n of_o all_o their_o argument_n i_o find_v that_o thomas_n aquinas_n seem_v to_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n for_o dispute_v how_o christ_n be_v sacrifice_v in_o the_o eucharist_n he_o answer_v that_o he_o be_v say_v to_o be_v in_o two_o respect_n first_o because_o the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o image_n mass_n thomas_n aquinas_n against_o the_o mass_n represent_v the_o passion_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v his_o true_a immolation_n and_o image_n use_v to_o be_v call_v by_o the_o name_n of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v image_n second_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o passion_n because_o by_o the_o sacrament_n we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o passion_n and_o say_v he_o as_o concern_v this_o second_o manner_n it_o be_v proper_a to_o this_o sacrament_n that_o christ_n be_v immolate_a or_o sacrifice_v therein_o these_o reason_n argue_v that_o he_o hold_v no_o such_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n as_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n defend_v because_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o his_o judgement_n be_v but_o a_o image_n of_o the_o true_a sacrifice_n of_o christ_n he_o can_v not_o think_v it_o to_o be_v a_o true_a sacrifice_n uni-vocal_o so_o call_v but_o only_o by_o external_a relation_n and_o say_v again_o that_o christ_n be_v sacrifice_v therein_o by_o reason_n we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o his_o paession_n he_o show_v clear_o he_o know_v no_o real_a sacrifice_n because_o we_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o that_o even_a in_o baptism_n also_o where_o no_o man_n imagine_v christ_n to_o be_v sacrifice_v 5._o mass_n idolatry_n be_v commit_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n but_o what_o shall_v i_o say_v of_o that_o most_o odious_a and_o horrible_a idolatry_n that_o be_v commit_v in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n where_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v the_o creature_n of_o god_n be_v worship_v with_o latria_n as_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n the_o which_o worship_n be_v only_o due_a to_o god_n o_o you_o heaven_n come_v and_o admire_v at_o this_o unspeakable_a folly_n and_o blindness_n of_o man_n they_o stick_v not_o only_o to_o do_v this_o abominable_a fact_n but_o they_o persist_v also_o in_o teach_v it_o i_o myself_o be_v a_o student_n in_o the_o college_n in_o rome_n have_v this_o deliver_v i_o from_o my_o master_n in_o the_o pulpit_n a_o learned_a jesuit_n in_o manner_n follow_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n who_o upon_o this_o question_n who_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v with_o the_o adoration_n of_o latria_n rom._n de_fw-fr adorat_fw-la ff_n 1._o q._n 1._o in_o dictat_fw-la rom._n say_v three_o with_o the_o same_o worship_n of_o latria_n the_o consecrate_a host_n and_o chalice_n be_v to_o be_v worship_v because_o under_o those_o most_o sacred_a form_n christ_n the_o lord_n be_v adore_v who_o be_v real_o present_a according_a to_o his_o humanity_n &_o divinity_n which_o be_v define_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n 40._o sess_n 13._o c._n 5._o can_n 6._o lib._n 2._o deritib_n eccles_n cap._n 40._o and_o stephanus_n durantus_n show_v it_o most_o full_o this_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v most_o untrue_a so_o be_v it_o here_o affirm_v by_o the_o italian_a reader_n with_o a_o manifest_a untruth_n for_o i_o can_v not_o so_o much_o as_o find_v the_o word_n latria_n in_o all_o that_o chapter_n of_o stephanus_n durantus_n trick_n an_fw-mi italiam_fw-la trick_n which_o i_o have_v very_o careful_o peruse_v herein_o 3._o durant_n c._n 40._o l._n 2._o num_fw-la 3._o who_o only_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v probable_a that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v lift_v up_o and_o show_v to_o the_o people_n for_o adoration_n sake_n and_o he_o may_v as_o well_o be_v understand_v of_o dulia_n or_o hyperdulia_fw-la or_o of_o a_o less_o reverence_n which_o be_v do_v in_o the_o ministration_n of_o any_o sacrament_n not_o in_o worship_n of_o the_o thing_n present_a but_o in_o worship_n of_o god_n who_o be_v in_o heaven_n yea_o and_o to_o show_v that_o this_o kind_n of_o latria-worship_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n in_o answer_n to_o his_o three_o question_n ibidem_fw-la ibidem_fw-la which_o be_v this_o since_o the_o precept_n of_o adore_v the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n at_o what_o time_n do_v it_o oblige_v the_o faithful_a to_o perform_v it_o he_o answer_v in_o sour_a case_n first_o when_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n be_v elevate_v those_o that_o be_v present_a be_v bind_v to_o adore_v it_o second_o when_o it_o be_v carry_v to_o the_o sick_a three_o when_o the_o ho●st_v be_v minister_v to_o the_o communicant_n the_o communicant_n be_v not_o only_o bind_v to_o
adore_v it_o but_o all_o the_o rest_n stand_v by_o and_o that_o be_v present_a although_o they_o receive_v not_o four_o when_o it_o be_v set_v forth_o upon_o the_o altar_n for_o public_a prayer_n as_o experience_n show_v in_o their_o forty_o hour_n prater_n by_o which_o it_o be_v apparent_a how_o frequent_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n enforce_v man_n to_o give_v that_o worship_n which_o be_v only_o due_a to_o god_n unto_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v by_o they_o to_o be_v worship_v as_o god_n for_o the_o council_n word_n be_v these_o euchar._n sess_n ●3_n can_v 6._o the_o sacr_n euchar._n if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o christ_n the_o only_o beget_v son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o to_o be_v adore_v in_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n with_o the_o worship_n of_o latria_n yea_o external_a and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v worship_v with_o any_o peculiar_a festival_n collebritie_n nor_o the_o be_v carry_v solemn_o in_o procession_n according_a to_o the_o laudable_a and_o universal_a rite_n and_o custom_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n or_o not_o to_o be_v propose_v to_o the_o people_n to_o be_v adore_v and_o the_o adorer_n thereof_o to_o be_v idolater_n be_v he_o accurse_v here_o be_v a_o strange_a piece_n of_o doctrine_n yet_o be_v it_o not_o unaccompanied_a with_o the_o malediction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n i_o can_v observe_v any_o place_n or_o passage_n of_o scripture_n that_o make_v for_o this_o doctrine_n no_o neither_o do_v stephanus_n durantus_n cite_v either_o scripture_n or_o other_o ancient_a father_n that_o make_v for_o this_o latria_n worship_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n unheard_a of_o in_o the_o primer_n age_n of_o christ_n church_n only_o this_o i_o note_v that_o he_o cit_v some_o ancient_a father_n seem_v to_o approve_v the_o worship_n of_o christ_n in_o heaven_n when_o they_o behold_v the_o sacrament_n yea_o and_o also_o some_o kind_n of_o reverence_n to_o the_o sacrament_n but_o no_o such_o as_o be_v due_a to_o god_n but_o rather_o as_o may_v be_v think_v such_o a_o kind_n of_o reverence_n as_o be_v use_v in_o baptism_n and_o fit_a to_o be_v use_v in_o the_o use_n of_o sign_n of_o holy_a thing_n and_o therefore_o to_o conclude_v since_o in_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n where_o the_o consecrate_a host_n must_v be_v adore_v with_o latria-worship_n most_o detestable_a idolatry_n be_v commit_v i_o can_v not_o but_o with_o a_o great_a dislike_n of_o so_o foul_a a_o abuse_n in_o doctrine_n disavow_v that_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n and_o hold_v it_o most_o abominable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o almighty_a god_n hence_o i_o conceive_v the_o more_o worthy_o of_o his_o majesty_n judgement_n and_o learning_n for_o if_o the_o very_a essential_a part_n of_o the_o public_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n have_v no_o warrant_n in_o scripture_n and_o the_o essential_a part_n thereof_o so_o idolatrous_a he_o may_v well_o &_o confident_o affirm_v of_o private_a mass_n praemonit_fw-la praemonit_fw-la if_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v join_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n never_o hear_v of_o in_o the_o first_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n i_o hope_v i_o shall_v never_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n for_o not_o be_v a_o nouleist_n such_o be_v the_o private_a mass_n where_o the_o priest_n play_v the_o part_n both_o of_o the_o priest_n and_o of_o the_o people_n for_o what_o a_o absurd_a thing_n be_v it_o for_o the_o priest_n to_o say_v dominus_fw-la vobiscum_fw-la or_o orate_fw-la fratres_fw-la the_o lord_n be_v with_o you_o or_o pray_v you_o brethren_n or_o to_o turn_v about_o as_o if_o there_o be_v people_n to_o answer_v when_o nothing_o but_o bare_a wall_n appear_v say_v item_fw-la miss●_n est_fw-la go_v you_o mass_n be_v do_v nay_o what_o a_o ridiculous_a prayer_n be_v it_o when_o the_o priest_n say_v unto_o god_n none_o be_v present_a but_o either_o a_o man_n or_o a_o woman_n play_v the_o office_n of_o a_o clerk_n memento_n domina_fw-la famulorum_fw-la famularum_fw-la missae_fw-la in_o can._n missae_fw-la que_fw-la tuarum_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la circumstantium_fw-la querun_v ubi_fw-la fides_fw-la cognita_fw-la est_fw-la &_o nota_fw-la devotio_fw-la pro_fw-la qubius_fw-la tibi_fw-la offerimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n remember_v o_o lord_n thy_o men-seruant_n and_o women-seruant_n and_o all_o that_o stand_v round_o about_o who_o faith_n and_o devotion_n be_v manifest_a and_o know_v unto_o thou_o this_o be_v as_o ridiculous_a a_o false_a prayer_n as_o that_o which_o the_o priest_n always_o say_v upon_o the_o feast_n of_o a_o ordinary_a confessor_n ad_fw-la sacrum_fw-la cvius_fw-la tumulum_fw-la frequenter_a membra_fw-la languentum_fw-la modo_fw-la sanitati_fw-la quolibet_fw-la morbo_fw-la fuerint_fw-la gravata_fw-la restituuntur_fw-la confessorum_fw-la breviar_n in_o come_v mu._n confessorum_fw-la under_o nunc_fw-la noster_fw-la chorus_n in_fw-la honorem_fw-la ipsius_fw-la hymnum_fw-la canit_fw-la hunc_fw-la libenter_fw-la ut_fw-la pijs_fw-la eius_fw-la meritis_fw-la iwemur_fw-la omne_fw-la per_fw-la aewm_fw-la english_v thus_o at_o who_o sacred_a tomb_n sick_a people_n even_o now_o often_o with_o whatsoever_o disease_n they_o be_v oppress_v be_v restore_v to_o health_n our_o quire_n therefore_o now_o in_o honour_n of_o he_o sing_v this_o hymn_n willing_o that_o by_o his_o pious_a merit_n we_o may_v be_v holpen_v for_o ever_o be_v not_o this_o strange_a that_o so_o notorious_a a_o lie_n must_v by_o million_o of_o romish_a priest_n be_v sing_v and_o say_v upon_o the_o feast_n of_o such_o confessor_n at_o who_o tomb_n not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o lame_a dog_n be_v ever_o cure_v and_o yet_o they_o stick_v not_o to_o say_v that_o often_o and_o from_o every_o disease_n they_o be_v cure_v but_o by_o this_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v that_o the_o romish_a church_n have_v little_a care_n what_o she_o allow_v or_o practise_v how_o gross_a or_o absurd_a soever_o it_o be_v so_o long_o as_o her_o erroneous_a doctrine_n may_v either_o be_v believe_v or_o practise_v and_o hence_o she_o suffer_v the_o latria-worship_n of_o the_o host_n to_o be_v instill_v into_o the_o vulgar_a sort_n of_o people_n without_o any_o remorse_n or_o scruple_n for_o so_o unwarrantable_a a_o error_n 5_o now_o as_o for_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n signification_n the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o mass_n have_v no_o certain_a signification_n as_o i_o have_v be_v careful_a to_o learn_v their_o meaning_n and_o signification_n thereby_o have_v i_o also_o find_v as_o great_a cause_n to_o disgust_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n as_o for_o the_o former_a for_o so_o uncertain_a be_v the_o disagreement_n of_o romish_a author_n about_o they_o as_o none_o can_v be_v great_a michael_n the_o suffragan_n of_o mets_n tell_v we_o amy_n the_o amy_n that_o the_o humerale_fw-mi which_o be_v make_v of_o thin_a linen_n nus_fw-la michael_n suffragan_n mongunt_fw-la explic_a mist_n sacrosanct_a nus_fw-la yet_o pure_a and_o clean_a cover_v the_o priest_n head_n signify_v christ_n divinity_n cover_v with_o frail_a humane_a flesh_n free_a and_o clean_o from_o sin_n in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v that_o it_o design_v the_o indefatigable_a labour_n of_o do_v good_a and_o chastity_n of_o body_n and_o mind_n but_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la say_v 26._o jac._n de_fw-fr vor._n ser_n de_fw-fr sanct._n de_fw-fr celibrat_fw-la miss_n ser_fw-mi 1._o de_fw-fr ritibus_fw-la eccle_n catho_n c._n 9_o ff_n 6._o lib._n 2._o de_fw-la sacra_fw-la part_n 4._o part._n 4_o q_o 26._o that_o it_o signify_v the_o helmet_n of_o salvation_n because_o he_o must_v appoach_v to_o the_o altar_n with_o hope_n and_o confidence_n stephanus_n durantus_n that_o thereby_o be_v understand_v the_o custody_n of_o a_o man_n mouth_n hugo_n de_fw-fr sancto_n victory_n and_o alexander_n de_fw-fr alice_n think_v it_o signify_v the_o veil_n wherewith_o the_o perfidious_a jew_n do_v cover_v the_o face_n of_o christ_n the_o albe_n according_a to_o michael_n the_o suffragan_n because_o it_o be_v clean_o and_o close_v round_o about_o the_o priest_n design_v the_o most_o entire_a conversation_n of_o christ_n among_o all_o ibid._n the_o albe_n ibid._n and_o in_o another_o place_n he_o say_v it_o admonish_v we_o of_o the_o innocence_n and_o purity_n we_o receive_v in_o baptism_n but_o jacobus_n de_fw-fr voragine_fw-la supra_fw-la ibid._n vbi_fw-la supra_fw-la more_o like_o a_o soldier_n will_v have_v it_o signify_v loricam_fw-la iustitiae_fw-la because_o that_o as_o the_o albe_n cover_v the_o priest_n all_o over_o so_o do_v justice_n with_o other_o virtue_n cover_v the_o soul_n 9_o ibid._n nu_fw-la 9_o stephanus_n durantus_n will_v have_v it_o signify_v the_o perseverance_n of_o good_a work_n germanus_n will_v have_v it_o signify_v the_o brightness_n of_o the_o godhead_n ecclesiast_fw-la in_o theor._n rerum_fw-la ecclesiast_fw-la and_o the_o shine_a conversation_n of_o a_o priest_n again_o it_o represent_v the_o white_a garment_n wherewith_o herode_fw-la do_v mock_v christ_n stephanus_n eduensis_n bishop_n say_v that_o it_o design_v the_o glory_n of_o
and_o wine_n pass_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n yet_o so_o as_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o and_o they_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o divine_a substance_n yet_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n still_o remain_v in_o the_o property_n of_o their_o nature_n if_o this_o be_v true_a that_o the_o nature_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n cease_v not_o and_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n still_o remain_v in_o the_o property_n of_o their_o nature_n then_o can_v not_o transubstantiation_n stand_v for_o hereby_o gelasius_n confute_v eutiche_n the_o heretic_n hold_v that_o christ_n have_v but_o one_o nature_n and_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o union_n the_o humanity_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o deity_n against_o which_o error_n he_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n show_v that_o as_o therein_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o consecration_n be_v honour_v with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o receive_v grace_n to_o their_o nature_n to_o be_v a_o holy_a sacrament_n though_o still_o they_o remain_v in_o their_o former_a nature_n and_o property_n so_o the_o humanity_n of_o christ_n receive_v grace_n by_o the_o hypostatical_a unite_n it_o to_o the_o godhead_n and_o yet_o still_o retain_v the_o former_a property_n to_o be_v humane_a flesh_n therefore_o have_v gelasius_n belief_n be_v answerable_a to_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n concern_v transubstantiation_n he_o not_o only_a can_v not_o thereby_o have_v confute_v eutiche_n but_o eutiche_n may_v by_o that_o very_a doctrine_n most_o probable_o have_v confute_v he_o who_o may_v right_v well_o have_v argue_v thus_o thou_o gelasius_n think_v the_o sacrament_n a_o resemblance_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o union_n of_o his_o two_o nature_n but_o in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o consecration_n remain_v no_o more_o but_o be_v turn_v into_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o there_o be_v but_o one_o substance_n after_o this_o manner_n may_v i_o likewise_o say_v in_o the_o incarnation_n after_o the_o union_n the_o humanity_n remain_v no_o more_o but_o be_v change_v into_o the_o divinity_n and_o the_o nature_n be_v but_o one_o what_o can_v gelasius_n have_v answer_v to_o this_o argument_n if_o he_o have_v hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n hence_o it_o be_v evident_a both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o the_o scope_n of_o his_o disputation_n that_o he_o hold_v it_o not_o not_o unlike_a to_o gelasius_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o theodoret_n 8._o dial._n immuta_fw-la fol._n 8._o write_v thus_o our_o saviour_n in_o deliver_v the_o sacrament_n call_v his_o body_n bread_n and_o that_o which_o be_v in_o the_o cup_n he_o call_v his_o blood_n he_o change_v the_o name_n and_o give_v his_o body_n that_o name_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o sign_n and_o to_o the_o sign_n that_o name_n which_o belong_v to_o his_o body_n the_o reason_n why_o he_o thus_o change_v the_o name_n be_v because_o he_o will_v have_v such_o as_o partake_v the_o divine_a sacrament_n not_o to_o heed_v the_o nature_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v but_o for_o the_o change_n sake_n of_o the_o name_n to_o believe_v the_o change_n that_o be_v make_v by_o grace_n for_o he_o call_v it_o wheat_n and_o bread_n which_o by_o nature_n be_v his_o body_n and_o again_o on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o call_v himself_o a_o vine_n thus_o honour_v the_o simbol_n and_o sign_n which_o be_v see_v with_o the_o name_n of_o his_o body_n &_o broud_n not_o by_o change_v their_o nature_n but_o by_o add_v grace_n to_o nature_n and_o further_o the_o same_o author_n in_o a_o other_o place_n reprehend_v the_o eutichian_a heretic_n say_v inconfusus_fw-la dialog_n 2._o inconfusus_fw-la you_o be_v catch_v in_o your_o own_o net_n for_o the_o mystical_a sign_n after_o consecration_n do_v not_o depart_v from_o their_o nature_n but_o they_o abide_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n form_n and_o figure_n and_o may_v be_v see_v &_o touch_v as_o before_o if_o they_o depart_v not_o from_o their_o nature_n if_o they_o abide_v in_o their_o former_a substance_n figure_n and_o form_n if_o christ_n change_v not_o the_o nature_n but_o the_o name_n add_v grace_n to_o nature_n how_o can_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o writer_n stand_v free_a from_o the_o impeachment_n of_o a_o erroneous_a innovation_n 7._o 46._o how_o modern_a author_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n show_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v novel_a de_fw-fr verit_fw-la corp_n &_o sing_v p._n 46._o and_o so_o i_o find_v even_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o learn_a modern_a writer_n this_o doctrine_n be_v but_o novel_a and_o of_o small_a antiquity_n and_o have_v not_o be_v believe_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n in_o the_o pure_a age_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n for_o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o before_o the_o council_n of_o laterane_n no_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v transubstantiation_n as_o themselves_o confess_v tonstal_n say_v it_o be_v free_a for_o all_o man_n till_o that_o time_n to_o follow_v their_o own_o conjecture_n as_o concern_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o presence_n scotus_n and_o biel_n be_v report_v by_o the_o late_a schoolman_n to_o have_v be_v of_o mind_n that_o the_o opinion_n be_v very_o new_a and_o late_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n 1._o soto_n 4._o do_v 9_o q._n 2._o art_n 2._o &_o 4._o suar._n tom_n 3._o d._n 5.4_o d._n 10._o q._n 2._o ad_fw-la arg_n pro_fw-la prima_fw-la sect_n 1._o and_o believe_v only_o upon_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o laterance_n council_n and_o scotus_n himself_o say_v we_o must_v say_v the_o church_n in_o the_o creed_n of_o the_o lateran_n council_n under_o innocent_a the_o three_o which_o begin_v with_o the_o word_n firmiter_fw-la credimus_fw-la declare_v this_o sense_n concern_v transubstantiation_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o verity_n of_o our_o faith_n beside_o scotus_n &_o bellarmine_n confess_v 49._o scot._n d._n 11._o q._n 3._o bellar._n euchar._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 23._o turrec_n tract_n 13._o q._n 49._o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n to_o convince_v it_o unless_o you_o bring_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n exposition_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o who_o they_o think_v the_o power_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n principal_o reside_v now_o therefore_o if_o this_o doctrine_n be_v no_o more_o ancient_a than_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n as_o it_o be_v clear_a i_o oppose_v against_o the_o accurse_v of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n the_o malediction_n of_o bless_a saint_n paul_n a_o better_a man_n than_o any_o in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n who_o pronounce_v a_o direful_a anathema_n against_o any_o that_o shall_v teach_v other_o doctrine_n than_o what_o he_o teach_v how_o fearful_a a_o state_n then_o do_v all_o popish_a priest_n stand_v in_o that_o teach_v this_o novelty_n of_o transubstantiation_n diametral_o contrary_a to_o the_o place_n of_o s._n paul_n before_o cite_v 30._o 1._o cor._n 10.16_o 1._o cor._n 11.26_o verse_n 27._o verse_n 28._o euagrius_n 4._o lib._n hist_o c._n 35._o niceph._n lib._n 17._o cap._n 25._o hiesich_n l_o 2._o super_fw-la levit._fw-la cap._n 8._o euseb_n lib._n 7._o c._n 8._o august_n count_n lit_fw-fr petil._n lib._n 9_o c._n 30._o it_o be_v well_o know_v that_o it_o be_v a_o usual_a thing_n in_o former_a age_n in_o diverse_a place_n to_o give_v the_o residue_v of_o the_o sacrament_n to_o little_a child_n as_o euagrius_n and_o nicephorus_n have_v leave_v record_v to_o posterity_n yea_o and_o in_o other_o place_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n as_o hesichius_n teach_v neither_o have_v it_o be_v thought_n much_o in_o former_a time_n to_o give_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n into_o the_o people_n hand_n and_o sometime_o permit_v they_o to_o carry_v it_o home_o which_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o they_o conceit_v not_o then_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o have_v cause_v it_o since_o to_o be_v adore_v and_o have_v make_v it_o a_o sinful_a act_n for_o lay_v people_n to_o touch_v the_o sacrament_n yea_o and_o have_v bring_v it_o to_o such_o a_o fond_a esteem_n that_o if_o a_o fly_n or_o a_o spider_n fall_v into_o the_o wine_n or_o any_o like_a thing_n which_o can_v not_o without_o vomit_n or_o danger_n of_o death_n be_v take_v down_o the_o fly_n or_o spider_n or_o what_o else_o must_v be_v take_v out_o and_o wash_v as_o wary_o as_o may_v be_v in_o a_o chalice_n and_o the_o priest_n must_v take_v the_o ablution_n but_o the_o fly_n or_o spider_n must_v be_v burn_v cap._n ibidem_fw-la eodem_fw-la cap._n or_o if_o a_o sick_a man_n vomit_v up_o the_o body_n of_o the_o lord_n it_o must_v be_v take_v up_o again_o as_o diligent_o as_o may_v be_v and_o take_v by_o a_o
priest_n or_o by_o some_o clean_a and_o discreet_a youth_n if_o the_o sick_a man_n can_v not_o resume_v it_o himself_o 8._o transubstantiation_n the_o inconvenience_n of_o approve_v transubstantiation_n beside_o the_o inconvenience_n that_o follow_v of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n be_v so_o many_o that_o no_o man_n almost_o out_o of_o common_a sense_n can_v admit_v it_o unless_o be_v will_v fond_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o such_o a_o general_a implicit_a faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n inerrabilitie_n whereby_o he_o may_v fall_v into_o as_o many_o heresy_n and_o danger_n of_o seduction_n as_o a_o blind_a man_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o fall_n if_o he_o will_v only_o walk_v by_o the_o guidance_n of_o a_o other_o as_o blind_a as_o himself_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o must_v be_v believe_v that_o accident_n be_v without_o a_o subject_n whereas_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n require_v no_o such_o matter_n like_v as_o when_o the_o wood_n be_v burn_v the_o colour_n of_o the_o wood_n shall_v remain_v alone_o without_o a_o subject_n that_o mouse_n that_o knaw_v the_o consecrate_a host_n do_v know_fw-mi bare_a accident_n alone_o and_o thta_fw-la the_o glorify_a body_n of_o christ_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o grind_n of_o tooth_n that_o no_o work_n of_o god_n neither_o of_o creation_n nor_o of_o redemption_n be_v so_o great_a as_o the_o work_n of_o consecration_n by_o the_o priest_n by_o which_o transubstantiation_n be_v perform_v whence_o it_o be_v come_v that_o the_o romish_a divine_n hold_v that_o many_o miracle_n together_o be_v do_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n whereof_o joannes_n de_fw-fr combis_n reckon_v up_o nine_o so_o fond_a and_o ridiculous_a that_o it_o be_v a_o wonder_n any_o man_n can_v believe_v they_o as_o first_o 14._o in_o comp._n theol._n verit_fw-la lib._n 6._o c._n 14._o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v in_o as_o much_o quantity_n there_o as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o heaven_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o exceed_v the_o bound_n of_o that_o form_n with_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o like_a nature_n hence_o to_o breed_v a_o belief_n of_o this_o doctrine_n the_o romish_a writer_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v lose_v in_o a_o village_n of_o komele_n in_o germany_n in_o a_o pix_n 7._o caesar_n lib._n 9_o c._n 7._o it_o be_v discover_v in_o a_o field_n by_o the_o ox_n that_o do_v worship_v it_o kneel_v down_o upon_o the_o ground_n which_o neither_o by_o whip_n nor_o cry_n will_v not_o stir_v out_o of_o the_o place_n from_o worship_v their_o creator_n till_o it_o be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o parish_n priest_n who_o fetch_v it_o away_o with_o cross_n candle_n and_o incense_v in_o great_a reverence_n they_o tell_v also_o how_o a_o certain_a woman_n go_v to_o the_o communion_n reserve_v the_o sacrament_n and_o put_v it_o into_o her_o hive_n among_o her_o bee_n as_o one_o have_v counsel_v she_o whereupon_o the_o pretty_a bee_n be_v so_o religious_o affect_v to_o their_o creator_n that_o for_o the_o fit_a entertainment_n of_o so_o great_a a_o guest_n 3._o s._n anto._n 3_o p._n sum_n tit_n 12._o c._n 8._o ff_n 3._o they_o build_v he_o a_o goodly_a chapel_n in_o wax_n with_o wall_n window_n door_n cave_n and_o altar_n to_o rest_v he_o upon_o with_o a_o bell_n also_o and_o when_o the_o time_n be_v come_v that_o the_o honey_n be_v to_o be_v take_v out_o the_o woman_n raise_v up_o her_o hive_n and_o behold_v this_o fine_a miracle_n which_o cause_v she_o with_o great_a fear_n to_o go_v and_o confess_v her_o fault_n to_o the_o priest_n who_o with_o his_o parishioner_n carry_v the_o host_n with_o great_a reverence_n to_o the_o church_n they_o tell_v also_o for_o a_o great_a miracle_n concern_v this_o doctrine_n 4._o s._n bonavent_a in_o vit_fw-fr 8._o francis_n cath._n hist_o cap._n 5_o tit_n 13._o part_n 4._o how_o that_o s._n francis_n have_v a_o sheep_n which_o ordinary_o go_v to_o church_n which_o at_o the_o time_n of_o elevation_n of_o the_o lord_n body_n that_o the_o people_n may_v worship_v it_o bend_v down_o his_o head_n fall_v upon_o his_o knee_n show_v all_o other_o token_n of_o worship_n and_o adoration_n which_o much_o move_v the_o assistance_n to_o great_a devotion_n they_o tell_v further_o domini_fw-la joan._n mefreth_n in_fw-it hort_fw-mi reign_v ser_fw-mi de_fw-fr coena_fw-la domini_fw-la that_o when_o a_o woman_n cast_v the_o sacrament_n among_o swine_n they_o kneel_v down_o to_o it_o and_o worship_v it_o how_o she_o roast_v it_o and_o it_o fall_v a_o bleed_n how_o she_o bury_v it_o in_o the_o earth_n and_o yet_o still_o the_o blood_n flow_v forth_o whereupon_o move_v to_o compunction_n she_o believe_v the_o true_a body_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o do_v penance_n for_o her_o incredulity_n all_o the_o rest_n of_o her_o life_n many_o other_o the_o like_o incredible_a fable_n they_o have_v leave_v record_v to_o move_v man_n to_o worship_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n with_o divine_a honour_n due_a only_o to_o god_n and_o so_o to_o confirm_v this_o novelty_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o which_o since_o there_o be_v no_o scripture_n to_o support_v it_o i_o can_v not_o believe_v it_o as_o also_o for_o that_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o reason_n note_v in_o this_o chapter_n induce_v i_o to_o the_o contrary_a belief_n therefore_o dear_a reader_n beware_v how_o you_o believe_v the_o romish_a doctrine_n establish_v with_o such_o lie_a sign_n and_o wonder_n reject_v both_o scripture_n and_o father_n to_o the_o contrary_a make_v not_o a_o corruptible_a creature_n your_o god_n and_o maker_n give_v honour_n and_o glory_n unto_o god_n only_o who_o by_o his_o infinite_a mercy_n require_v it_o at_o thy_o hand_n and_o as_o i_o have_v do_v renounce_v all_o society_n in_o rite_n ceremony_n and_o act_n of_o religion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o that_o of_o david_n may_v be_v verify_v both_o of_o i_o &_o thou_o 1._o psal_n 1._o v._n 1._o save_v blessed_n be_v the_o man_n that_o have_v not_o walk_v in_o the_o council_n of_o the_o ungodly_a nor_o stand_v in_o the_o way_n of_o sinner_n and_o have_v not_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o pestilence_n which_o happiness_n thou_o may_v enjoy_v if_o thou_o follow_v not_o the_o ungodlie_a counsel_n of_o lateran_n and_o trent_n in_o this_o point_n of_o doctrine_n if_o thou_o continue_v not_o in_o that_o church_n and_o rest_v not_o thyself_o upon_o that_o pestilent_a chair_n of_o rome_n infectious_a idolatry_n chap._n xiiii_o contain_v a_o observation_n about_o the_o sacrament_n minister_v but_o under_o one_o kind_n to_o lay_v people_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n i_o have_v read_v in_o a_o certain_a preacher_n that_o the_o writer_n of_o natural_a thing_n have_v leave_v record_v heb_fw-mi the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n give_v not_o life_n unto_o the_o soul_n petrus_n besseus_fw-la concep_n theol._n fer_fw-fr 2._o maior_fw-la heb_fw-mi that_o there_o be_v a_o certain_a herb_n to_o be_v find_v upon_o the_o alps_n have_v only_o two_o branch_n which_o be_v of_o such_o a_o strange_a natural_a power_n and_o officacie_n that_o the_o beast_n live_v upon_o those_o mountain_n if_o they_o chance_v to_o taste_v but_o of_o one_o of_o those_o branch_n forthwith_o they_o die_v but_o if_o they_o eat_v of_o both_o branch_n they_o take_v no_o hurt_n or_o damage_n but_o be_v nourish_v thereby_o even_o so_o do_v i_o observe_v upon_o the_o mountain_n of_o holy_a scripture_n the_o plant_n of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n have_v two_o branch_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o christ_n institution_n of_o such_o nature_n and_o quality_n that_o if_o by_o faith_n his_o faithful_a flock_n eat_v but_o of_o one_o branch_n and_o leave_v the_o other_o they_o perish_v through_o heresy_n but_o if_o by_o faith_n they_o taste_v and_o feed_v of_o both_o branch_n that_o be_v both_o of_o bread_n and_o wine_n they_o feel_v much_o good_a they_o be_v strengthen_v in_o the_o life_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o be_v much_o nourish_v thereby_o according_a to_o that_o of_o christ_n 6._o joan._n 6._o nisi_fw-la manducaveritis_fw-la carnem_fw-la filii_fw-la hominis_fw-la &_o biberitis_fw-la eius_fw-la sanguinem_fw-la non_fw-la habebitis_fw-la vit_fw-mi be_fw-mi in_o vobis_fw-la unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o shall_v not_o have_v life_n in_o you_o whereby_o i_o observe_v the_o great_a danger_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n stand_v in_o which_o will_v afford_v here_o sheep_n in_o the_o sacrament_n only_o one_o branch_n viz._n the_o bread_n and_o bereave_v they_o of_o the_o other_o branch_n viz._n the_o wine_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n the_o great_a happiness_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o afford_v christ_n faithful_a flock_n both_o branch_n
of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n as_o well_o bread_n as_o wine_n according_a to_o christ_n own_o institution_n this_o inducement_n among_o many_o have_v not_o be_v the_o least_o which_o have_v as_o comfortable_o draw_v i_o to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o the_o star_n which_o appear_v to_o the_o three_o sage_n in_o the_o east_n guide_v they_o in_o a_o short_a space_n to_o the_o presence_n of_o christ_n swaddle_v in_o clothes_n and_o lie_v in_o a_o crib_n at_o bethlem_n have_v in_o imitation_n of_o they_o now_o offer_v up_o my_o three_o gift_n unto_o christ_n to_o be_v employ_v whole_o in_o his_o service_n my_o understanding_n my_o memory_n and_o my_o will_n with_o all_o my_o faculty_n of_o body_n and_o soul_n depend_v or_o subject_n unto_o they_o for_o the_o propagation_n of_o his_o gospel_n for_o the_o demolition_n of_o romish_a novelty_n and_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o unspeakable_a mercy_n show_v unto_o i_o and_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o free_v we_o from_o those_o damnable_a error_n and_o wicked_a way_n wherein_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n lead_v her_o blind_a follower_n which_o fond_o shut_v their_o eye_n from_o the_o sunshine_n of_o truth_n appear_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o from_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n who_o like_o shine_a star_n by_o their_o doctrine_n record_v in_o the_o book_n of_o god_n secret_n will_v both_o comfort_n and_o direct_v their_o soul_n in_o the_o right_a way_n to_o heaven_n if_o fly_v with_o humility_n to_o christ_n and_o acknowledge_v their_o own_o blindness_n they_o will_v cry_v out_o with_o devotion_n unto_o he_o like_o the_o poor_a blind_a man_n in_o the_o gospel_n domine_fw-la fac_fw-la ut_fw-la videam_fw-la o_o lord_n make_v i_o to_o see_v 2._o howsoever_o the_o adversary_n in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n make_v no_o reckon_n of_o the_o wine_n eucharist_n both_o form_n must_v be_v in_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o sacrament_n yet_o the_o true_a faithful_a know_v the_o dignity_n and_o excellent_a value_n thereof_o will_v not_o be_v so_o unmannerly_a be_v invite_v thereunto_o as_o to_o neglect_v that_o which_o christ_n provide_v for_o they_o for_o be_v right_o inform_v that_o as_o in_o the_o great_a and_o pompous_a supper_n which_o cleopatra_n queen_n of_o egypt_n set_v before_o antonius_n there_o be_v two_o precious_a jewel_n and_o gem_n bring_v to_o antonius_n which_o be_v esteem_v to_o be_v worth_a two_o hundred_o and_o fifty_o thousand_o crown_n even_o so_o in_o the_o supper_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o bless_a eucharist_n which_o be_v the_o great_a supper_n proud_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n for_o his_o faithful_a friend_n there_o be_v two_o jewel_n of_o inestimable_a price_n that_o be_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o mean_n whereof_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o rich_a price_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v convey_v unto_o our_o soul_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n why_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v to_o be_v the_o chaste_a spouse_n of_o christ_n shall_v be_v so_o scornful_a of_o the_o rich_a gift_n of_o her_o heavenly_a spouse_n who_o liberal_o offer_v she_o both_o these_o jewel_n as_o most_o discourteous_o to_o suffer_v and_o permit_v that_o the_o lay_v people_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o one_o of_o they_o since_o christ_n have_v appoint_v both_o for_o they_o the_o practice_n to_o be_v so_o be_v sufficient_o know_v to_o all_o and_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o also_o appear_v by_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n say_v 1._o council_n trident._n ses_fw-fr 21._o anno_fw-la 1._o if_o any_o shall_v say_v that_o by_o god_n precept_n or_o upon_o necessity_n of_o salvation_n all_o and_o every_o faithful_a of_o christ_n ought_v to_o take_v both_o form_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o agine_v if_o any_o shall_v say_v 2._o cap._n 2._o that_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n be_v not_o lead_v upon_o just_a cause_n and_o reason_n to_o communicate_v lay_v man_n and_o clerk_n also_o not_o consecrate_v only_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n or_o therein_o to_o have_v err_v let_v he_o be_v anathema_n by_o which_o it_o be_v most_o apparent_a how_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v not_o only_o cross_v christ_n institution_n and_o disobey_v his_o commandment_n but_o also_o overthrow_v the_o very_a essential_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n 3_o for_o first_o sacrament_n the_o ministration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o form_n be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o essential_a in_o a_o sacrament_n than_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n thereof_o as_o in_o baptism_n the_o water_n and_o word_n so_o in_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o essential_a part_n thereof_o be_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n coniunctim_fw-la joint_o and_o the_o word_n of_o consecration_n of_o either_o of_o they_o joint_o and_o not_o divide_v for_o the_o catechism_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n define_v a_o sacrament_n thus_o parachos_n cathe_n ad_fw-la parachos_n a_o sacrament_n be_v a_o thing_n subject_a to_o our_o sense_n which_o by_o god_n institution_n have_v power_n as_o well_o to_o signify_v as_o to_o effect_v holiness_n and_o righteousness_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o sensible_a sign_n institute_v by_o god_n be_v a_o thing_n essential_a to_o every_o sacrament_n which_o appear_v also_o b_o johan_n viguerius_n say_v 3_o de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la in_o go_v c._n 16._o v._n 3_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v assume_v for_o the_o sacrament_n be_v determine_v by_o god_n institution_n because_o that_o thing_n by_o their_o natural_a virtue_n have_v no_o power_n of_o sanctify_v now_o therefore_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o matter_n and_o sensible_a sign_n institute_v by_o christ_n for_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n 1._o jnstit_fw-la c._n 16._o ff_n 3._o vers_fw-la 1._o thom._n 3._o p._n q._n 74._o art_n 1._o johannes_n viguerius_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o matter_n of_o this_o sacrament_n before_o consecration_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n because_o christ_n take_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o melchisedech_n who_o in_o his_o sacrifice_n figure_v christ_n offer_v bread_n and_o wine_n so_o christ_n do_v institute_v it_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o very_o convenient_o first_o for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v eat_v for_o as_o water_n be_v take_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n for_o the_o use_n of_o spiritual_a ablution_n because_o corporal_a ablution_n be_v common_o do_v by_o water_n so_o bread_n and_o wine_n for_o spiritual_a refection_n because_o most_o common_o man_n be_v corporal_o refresh_v therewith_o second_o for_o signification_n because_o this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o memorial_n of_o the_o lord_n passion_n in_o the_o which_o the_o blood_n be_v spearate_v from_o the_o body_n so_o distinct_o the_o bread_n as_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o wine_n as_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o blood_n three_o for_o the_o effect_n in_o respect_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o consist_v of_o diverse_a believer_n so_o the_o bread_n be_v make_v of_o diverse_a corn_n and_o the_o wine_n of_o diverse_a grape_n out_o of_o this_o ground_n it_o seem_v that_o the_o jesuit_n in_o rome_n deliver_v in_o the_o school_n the_o definition_n of_o this_o sacrament_n in_o this_o manner_n which_o i_o take_v from_o his_o mouth_n with_o my_o own_o pen_n which_o be_v 3._o de_fw-fr sacramentis_fw-la tract_n 4._o c._n 1._o dico_fw-la 3._o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o sacrament_n which_o under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n contain_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n for_o the_o nourishment_n of_o spiritual_a life_n give_v by_o baptism_n from_o all_o which_o doctrine_n i_o most_o clear_o gather_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n joint_o minister_v belong_v to_o this_o sacrament_n and_o that_o without_o overthrow_v the_o essence_n of_o this_o sacrament_n according_a to_o our_o adversary_n own_o teacher_n it_o can_v be_v give_v under_o one_o kind_n to_o the_o lie_v people_n for_o it_o be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o lay_v people_n according_a to_o the_o essential_a part_n thereof_o institute_v by_o christ_n but_o according_a to_o these_o writer_n the_o essential_a part_n thereof_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n joint_o as_o the_o matter_n the_o form_n be_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n joint_o pronounce_v over_o either_o form_n ergo_fw-la the_o bread_n and_o wine_n coniunctim_fw-la be_v to_o be_v minister_v to_o their_o people_n for_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o sacrament_n whence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o the_o amputation_n of_o one_o form_n utter_o cross_v and_o overthrow_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o so_o make_v it_o no_o sacrament_n at_o all_o
hold_v of_o the_o pope_n pope_n indulgence_n ground_v upon_o the_o covetousness_n of_o pope_n and_o draw_v they_o to_o employ_v their_o study_n more_o in_o gather_v together_o temporal_a wealth_n than_o the_o riches_n of_o god_n grace_n and_o true_a knowledge_n of_o the_o scripture_n for_o hence_o and_o from_o this_o source_n only_o have_v flow_v diverse_a point_n of_o doctrine_n now_o currant_n in_o rome_n more_o tend_v to_o the_o amplification_n and_o enlarge_n of_o his_o temporal_a kingdom_n than_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n church_n among_o which_o the_o doctrine_n of_o pardon_n and_o indulgence_n be_v not_o the_o least_o profitable_a for_o the_o fill_n up_o of_o the_o pope_n coffer_n and_o give_v contentment_n to_o his_o avaricious_a desire_n argue_v the_o great_a spiritual_a blindness_n god_n have_v permit_v he_o to_o fall_v into_o in_o punishment_n of_o the_o detestable_a sin_n 2._o definition_n indulgence_n disprove_v by_o their_o definition_n now_o this_o observation_n have_v avert_v my_o mind_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n with_o diverse_a other_o and_o lay_v open_a unto_o my_o soul_n the_o most_o foul_a abomination_n of_o that_o church_n for_o the_o better_a explication_n of_o her_o erroneous_a doctrine_n concern_v indulgence_n and_o pardon_n i_o must_v show_v thou_o courteous_a reader_n how_o this_o aversion_n grow_v in_o i_o by_o the_o examination_n and_o study_n of_o truth_n first_o i_o begin_v to_o examine_v the_o true_a nature_n of_o these_o romish_a indulgence_n and_o pardon_n by_o the_o definition_n of_o they_o which_o i_o find_v in_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n to_o be_v thus_o express_v 2._o lib._n 5._o de_fw-la poenit_fw-la cap._n 2._o indulgence_n say_v he_o be_v the_o remission_n of_o pain_n which_o be_v to_o be_v endure_v after_o the_o remission_n of_o fault_n grant_v unto_o the_o faithful_a for_o a_o reasonable_a cause_n by_o the_o high_a bishop_n out_o of_o a_o fatherly_a lenity_n and_o condescension_n joannes_n viguerius_n the_o great_a scholar_n of_o spain_n call_v indulgence_n 29._o joan._n viguer_n instit_fw-la christi_fw-la cap._n 16._o vers_fw-la 29._o a_o distribution_n of_o the_o treasure_n or_o a_o application_n of_o the_o penalty_n of_o the_o supererogation_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o his_o saint_n for_o the_o remission_n of_o pain_n due_a for_o pass_v sin_n make_v by_o he_o that_o rule_v the_o universal_a church_n with_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n silvester_n their_o best_a summist_n for_o case_n of_o conscience_n define_v it_o thus_o the_o ecclesiastical_a indulgence_n 3._o silu_a verb._n jndulgentia_fw-la num_fw-la 3._o be_v a_o donation_n of_o some_o thing_n take_v out_o of_o the_o spiritual_a treasure_n of_o the_o church_n make_v unto_o a_o sinner_n that_o he_o may_v satisfy_v god_n the_o creditor_n of_o his_o pain_n thus_o these_o learned_a man_n of_o rome_n write_v of_o the_o nature_n of_o indulgence_n whereupon_o first_o i_o note_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n that_o these_o pardon_n be_v not_o to_o be_v grant_v without_o a_o reasonable_a cause_n and_o according_a to_o viguerius_n with_o judgement_n of_o discretion_n yet_o notwithstanding_o this_o be_v contradict_v by_o emanuel_n sa_o the_o jesuite_n who_o say_v that_o some_o say_v a_o indulgence_n give_v without_o cause_n be_v of_o value_n 2._o verbo_fw-la indulgen_n num_fw-la 1._o bonavent_n 4._o d._n 20.2_o part_n q._n ult._n solu_fw-la 4._o d._n 21._o q._n 2._o art_n 2._o other_o do_v not_o only_o require_v a_o just_a cause_n but_o such_o a_o cause_n as_o be_v proportionable_a to_o the_o indulgence_n ay_o but_o sa_n himself_o peremptory_o affirm_v i_o think_v no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v of_o a_o indulgence_n give_v from_o the_o pope_n where_o i_o note_v this_o man_n to_o be_v more_o the_o pope_n friend_n than_o the_o rest_n who_o whether_o the_o pope_n with_o just_a cause_n or_o without_o just_a cause_n grant_v a_o indulgence_n he_o approve_v it_o and_o further_o i_o observe_v a_o great_a difference_n among_o the_o romish_a writer_n in_o this_o point_n and_o therefore_o no_o credit_n to_o be_v give_v to_o those_o that_o so_o much_o disagree_v in_o the_o cause_n why_o indulgence_n shall_v be_v grant_v second_o i_o note_v out_o of_o silvester_n that_o the_o subject_n of_o indulgence_n be_v a_o sinner_n i_o mean_v as_o he_o say_v it_o be_v grant_v to_o a_o sinner_n and_o yet_o this_o seem_v to_o be_v contradict_v by_o he_o and_o other_o who_o say_v he_o that_o be_v not_o in_o god_n grace_n obtain_v not_o indulgence_n 3_o sil._n lerb_n indulg_n 5._o tho._n 3._o p._n q._n 27._o art_n 1._o solu_fw-la 4._o d._n 21._o q._n 2._o a._n 3._o adrian_n 4._o the_o indulgent_a col_fw-fr 13._o concl._n 3_o three_o i_o observe_v moreover_o that_o whereas_o the_o pope_n grant_v indulgence_n oftentimes_o both_o from_o sin_n and_o pain_n which_o now_o be_v grow_v ordinary_a he_o cross_v the_o doctrine_n of_o these_o author_n who_o in_o the_o definition_n of_o a_o indulgence_n make_v mention_n only_o of_o remission_n of_o pain_n and_o not_o of_o the_o sin_n for_o according_a to_o their_o own_o doctrine_n else_o where_o both_o mortal_a and_o venial_a sin_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n as_o the_o proper_a subject_n and_o matter_n of_o their_o sacramental_a absolution_n 3._o now_o for_o the_o establishment_n of_o this_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n indulgence_n the_o scripture_n abuse_v about_o indulgence_n they_o have_v no_o scripture_n as_o far_o as_o i_o can_v perceive_v of_o any_o force_n which_o have_v make_v the_o reform_a church_n to_o term_v these_o papal_a indulgence_n pious_a fraud_n of_o the_o faithful_a invention_n and_o imposture_n and_o his_o majesty_n discover_v as_o much_o just_o to_o reckon_v they_o among_o the_o trash_n depend_v upon_o purgatory_n 43._o to_o christ._n mon._n f._n 43._o not_o worth_a the_o talk_n of_o yet_o do_v they_o not_o stick_v to_o be_v so_o presumptuous_a as_o to_o allege_v scripture_n most_o indiscreet_o for_o their_o doctrine_n as_o namely_o joannes_n viguerius_n do_v as_o if_o he_o have_v get_v a_o great_a victory_n against_o the_o reform_a church_n in_o this_o point_n prove_v the_o name_n of_o indulgence_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o prophet_n esay_n his_o word_n which_o he_o cit_v be_v these_o notwithstanding_o to_o convince_v their_o ignorance_n 19_o instit_fw-la christ_n c_o 6._o §_o 6._o vers_fw-la 19_o and_o unbridled_a boldness_n we_o must_v show_v the_o name_n indulgence_n express_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o sacred_a letter_n in_o the_o same_o sense_n the_o church_n use_v and_o this_o chief_o in_o esay_n the_o prophet_n where_o in_o the_o person_n of_o christ_n he_o say_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o i_o in_o that_o he_o have_v anoint_v i_o he_o send_v i_o to_o announce_v unto_o the_o meek_a to_o heal_v the_o contrite_a of_o heart_n to_o preach_v indulgence_n unto_o captive_n releasement_n to_o those_o that_o be_v shut_v up_o and_o so_o it_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v that_o the_o name_n of_o indulgence_n in_o the_o sacred_a letter_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v and_o that_o esay_n write_v according_a to_o the_o intention_n which_o the_o church_n use_v christ_n the_o lord_n have_v declare_v in_o s._n luke_n where_o it_o be_v say_v 4._o luc._n 4._o that_o when_o upon_o the_o sabaoth_n he_o enter_v the_o synagogue_n of_o nazareth_n he_o rise_v up_o to_o read_v and_o the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n esay_n be_v deliucred_a unto_o he_o and_o turn_v the_o book_n he_o find_v the_o place_n where_o it_o be_v write_v the_o spirit_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o i_o for_o that_o he_o have_v anoint_v i_o he_o have_v send_v i_o to_o euangelize_n to_o the_o poor_a to_o heal_v the_o contrite_a of_o heart_n to_o preach_v remission_n to_o captive_n behold_v how_o the_o name_n indulgence_n christ_n interprete_v remission_n but_o of_o what_o indulgence_n speak_v esay_n true_o of_o sin_n for_o the_o pardon_v and_o remit_v of_o which_o christ_n be_v send_v by_o god_n the_o father_n and_o because_o in_o sin_n there_o be_v two_o thing_n to_o wit_n the_o fault_n and_o the_o pain_n the_o remission_n of_o the_o fault_n and_o also_o the_o remission_n of_o the_o pain_n be_v right_o call_v indulgence_n but_o the_o church_n as_o be_v say_v take_v indulgence_n for_o the_o application_n of_o penalty_n of_o supererogation_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n by_o which_o pain_n be_v remit_v therefore_o nothing_o be_v more_o manifest_a than_o that_o the_o name_n of_o indulgence_n be_v find_v in_o the_o sacred_a letter_n according_a to_o the_o intention_n which_o the_o church_n use_v here_o i_o see_v a_o brave_a proof_n of_o a_o vaunt_a spaniard_n who_o with_o his_o spanish_a bravado_n think_v to_o have_v conquer_v but_o i_o believe_v when_o he_o shall_v have_v find_v the_o strength_n and_o truth_n of_o his_o encounterer_n who_o he_o term_v heretic_n if_o he_o be_v now_o alive_a he_o will_v say_v as_o i_o
sweet_a providence_n and_o mercy_n for_o those_o that_o live_v in_o a_o most_o blind_a and_o yet_o zealous_a ignorance_n of_o the_o error_n they_o be_v in_o wrap_v in_o by_o the_o slight_n of_o their_o false_a teacher_n seduce_v they_o who_o be_v much_o more_o industrious_a and_o laborious_a for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n than_o the_o true_a professor_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v for_o the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n according_a to_o our_o saviour_n own_o word_n prudentiores_fw-la sunt_fw-la filii_fw-la tenebrarum_fw-la quam_fw-la filii_fw-la lucis_fw-la in_o generatione_n sva_fw-la the_o child_n of_o darkness_n be_v more_o prudent_a in_o their_o generation_n than_o the_o child_n of_o light_n against_o who_o i_o will_v daily_o pray_v that_o those_o who_o stand_v as_o sentinel_n over_o the_o reform_a church_n may_v both_o have_v and_o careful_o practice_v our_o saviour_n word_n in_o another_o place_n as_o a_o wholesome_a autidote_n estote_fw-la prudentes_fw-la sicut_fw-la serpent_n &_o simplices_fw-la sicut_fw-la columbae_fw-la be_v you_o prudent_a like_o serpent_n and_o simple_a like_o dove_n use_v serpentine_a prudence_n to_o defend_v their_o faith_n and_o sovereign_a ruler_n as_o their_o head_n though_o with_o hazard_n of_o their_o own_o body_n and_o life_n and_o not_o omit_v such_o a_o sweet_a dovelike_a simplicity_n and_o mildness_n without_o gall_n of_o malice_n that_o their_o adversary_n may_v be_v overcome_v by_o the_o observation_n of_o their_o wisdom_n and_o their_o christian-like_a charity_n towards_o they_o 3_o but_o to_o return_v whence_o i_o be_o digress_v sacrament_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o terror_n more_o they_o by_o proof_n endeavour_n to_o plant_v the_o belief_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n i_o discover_v the_o idleness_n of_o the_o romish_a anathema_n by_o the_o error_n and_o novelty_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n for_o the_o desence_n whereof_o the_o council_n have_v thunder_v it_o out_o for_o i_o can_v find_v no_o scripture_n make_v proper_o for_o seven_o no_o nor_o any_o one_o ancient_a father_n reckon_v seven_o only_a and_o no_o few_o nor_o more_o as_o for_o baptism_n and_o the_o bless_a eucharist_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v for_o all_o the_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n require_v to_o a_o sacrament_n proper_o take_v do_v concur_v therein_o 5._o belarm_n lib._n 1._o de_fw-la sacra_fw-la bapt._n cap._n 1._o hebr._n 6._o vers_fw-la 4._o ephe._n 5._o vers_fw-la 26._o john_n 3_o vers_fw-la 5._o the_o external_a right_n be_v express_v in_o saint_n paul_n call_v it_o the_o laver_n of_o water_n in_o the_o word_n of_o life_n the_o institution_n and_o commandment_n unless_o a_o man_n be_v bear_v of_o water_n and_o the_o spirit_n he_o can_v come_v unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o go_v teach_v you_o all_o people_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n 16._o mark_n ult._n v._n 16._o and_o of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o promise_n of_o grace_n who_o beleen_v and_o be_v baptize_v shall_v be_v save_v but_o who_o believe_v not_o shall_v be_v damn_v so_o likewise_o in_o the_o eucharist_n the_o external_a rite_n be_v find_v to_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n 57_o mat._n 26._o vers_fw-la 26_o joh_n 6._o vers_fw-la 57_o the_o institution_n and_o commandment_n at_o the_o last_o supper_n do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n he_o that_o eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n abide_v in_o i_o and_o i_o in_o he_o whereby_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o of_o these_o two_o sacrament_n the_o scripture_n show_v all_o the_o thing_n most_o plain_o belong_v unto_o a_o sacrament_n proper_o take_v as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n understand_v of_o sacrament_n with_o all_o the_o thing_n necessary_o belong_v thereunto_o and_o therefore_o that_o these_o two_o be_v sacramnt_n be_v clear_a in_o their_o understanding_n which_o the_o church_n of_o england_n according_a to_o all_o antiquity_n do_v admit_v but_o the_o other_o five_o receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n either_o in_o one_o effentiall_a thing_n or_o other_o belong_v to_o a_o sacrament_n proper_o take_v be_v defective_a as_o either_o in_o the_o sensible_a sign_n or_o in_o the_o institution_n and_o commandment_n or_o in_o the_o promise_n of_o grace_n notwithstanding_o that_o all_o must_v concur_v according_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o a_o true_a sacrament_n now_o therefore_o although_o i_o can_v particular_o show_v by_o the_o disable_n of_o the_o other_o five_o that_o there_o be_v not_o seven_o sacrament_n as_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n define_v yet_o because_o i_o will_v avoid_v prolixity_n i_o will_v only_o prove_v it_o by_o show_v that_o penance_n be_v no_o such_o sacrament_n 4_o all_o divine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v joint_o agree_v that_o every_o sacrament_n consist_v of_o matter_n and_o form_n corp_n penance_n no_o sacrament_n proper_o neither_o be_v auricular_a confession_n any_o essential_a part_n thereof_o tho._n aquin._n part_n 3._o quaest_n 84._o art_n 2._o in_o corp_n s._n tho._n part_n 3._o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la art_n 3._o in_o corp_n the_o matter_n say_v they_o of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v contrition_n confession_n and_o satisfaction_n for_o the_o sin_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o the_o penitent_a the_o form_n be_v the_o word_n of_o absolution_n pronounce_v by_o the_o priest_n thomas_n of_o aquine_n their_o chief_a doctor_n say_v thus_o the_o near_a matter_n of_o this_o sacrament_n be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o penitent_a who_o matter_n be_v sin_n which_o he_o repent_v which_o he_o confess_v and_o for_o which_o he_o satisfi_v and_o in_o the_o next_o article_n he_o show_v the_o form_n say_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o this_o be_v the_o most_o convenient_a form_n of_o this_o sacrament_n i_o do_v absolve_v thou_o with_o who_o viguerius_n also_o agree_v say_v 1._o joannes_n viguer_n instit_fw-la cap._n 16._o vers_fw-la 1._o the_o near_a matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n be_v the_o act_n of_o the_o penitent_a contrition_n confession_n and_o satisfaction_n the_o matter_n of_o which_o act_n be_v sin_n which_o the_o penitent_a repent_v which_o he_o confess_v and_o for_o which_o he_o satisfiesh_a in_o who_o assertion_n i_o observe_v two_o notable_a error_n first_o that_o they_o count_v penance_n a_o sacrament_n which_o be_v only_o a_o virtue_n dispose_v man_n to_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n according_a to_o that_o probet_fw-la seipsum_fw-la homo_fw-la &_o sic_fw-la de_fw-la pane_fw-la illo_fw-la edat_fw-la let_v a_o man_n prove_v himself_o and_o so_o eat_v of_o that_o bread_n which_o prove_v must_v be_v by_o repentance_n and_o second_o that_o they_o make_v auricular_a confession_n consist_v in_o a_o circumstantial_a enumeration_n of_o sin_n in_o their_o numeral_a distinct_a kind_n to_o a_o priest_n a_o effentiall_a part_n of_o that_o sacrament_n neither_o of_o which_o can_v be_v prove_v in_o scripture_n i_o can_v but_o admire_v to_o see_v so_o great_a a_o doctor_n as_o thomas_n aquinas_n be_v 8._o tho._n aquin._n part_n 3._o de_fw-la sacra_fw-la poenit_fw-la art_n 1._o sed_fw-la contra_fw-la act._n 8._o to_o make_v a_o most_o weak_a argument_n for_o proof_n of_o this_o sacrament_n say_v that_o as_o baptism_n be_v adhebit_v for_o the_o purification_n of_o sin_n so_o penance_n therefore_o peter_n say_v to_o simon_n do_v penance_n for_o this_o thy_o wickedness_n but_o baptism_n be_v a_o sacrament_n as_o be_v say_v before_o therefore_o penance_n also_o for_o the_o like_a reason_n here_o be_v a_o stout_a reason_n and_o of_o great_a force_n certes_o especial_o when_o we_o consider_v that_o the_o angelical_a doctor_n follow_v the_o vulgar_a translation_n misalleage_v the_o scripture_n for_o in_o the_o greek_a set_v out_o by_o arias_n montanus_n the_o greek_a word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d signify_v not_o do_v penance_n 22._o arias_n montan._n in_o 8._o act._n apost_n vers_fw-la 22._o but_o repent_v thou_o as_o the_o same_o author_n though_o a_o romanist_n translate_v it_o neither_o be_v it_o here_o to_o be_v omit_v how_o notorious_o the_o rhemist_n do_v deprave_v the_o same_o place_n of_o scripture_n who_o in_o excuse_n of_o their_o follow_v the_o vulgar_a translation_n add_v a_o notable_a falsehood_n and_o untruth_n say_v 22._o in_o annot_fw-mi act._n 8._o vers_fw-la 22._o that_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d do_v signify_v as_o much_o be_v it_o not_o strange_a then_o that_o arias_n montanus_n i_o think_v as_o good_a a_o grecian_a as_o any_o of_o they_o will_v have_v swerve_v from_o their_o translation_n but_o their_o imposture_n in_o this_o place_n be_v most_o inexcusable_a show_v that_o they_o care_v not_o what_o they_o say_v so_o they_o may_v cross_v the_o reform_a church_n as_o appear_v when_o in_o the_o table_n before_o the_o new_a testament_n print_v anno_fw-la 1600_o wherein_o they_o charge_v the_o english_a edition_n of_o false_a translation_n
church_n in_o the_o same_o kingdom_n be_v advertise_v that_o the_o dacian_o make_v preparation_n for_o the_o war_n against_o he_o whereupon_o he_o send_v the_o abbot_n hersinus_n unto_o they_o to_o know_v the_o truth_n of_o their_o designment_n the_o abbot_n then_o be_v upon_o his_o return_n at_o sea_n be_v surprise_v with_o such_o a_o tempestuous_a storm_n that_o he_o and_o all_o his_o people_n be_v in_o danger_n of_o their_o life_n if_o they_o have_v not_o seek_v for_o succour_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n for_o as_o they_o invoke_v she_o with_o all_o the_o devotion_n they_o can_v behold_v there_o come_v from_o heaven_n a_o venerable_a personage_n apparel_v like_o a_o bishop_n who_o after_o he_o have_v salute_v the_o abbot_n say_v unto_o he_o will_v you_o be_v deliver_v from_o this_o danger_n he_o answer_v that_o he_o desire_v nothing_o more_o know_v you_o then_o say_v the_o personage_n that_o i_o be_o send_v from_o the_o virgin_n marie_n to_o advertise_v you_o that_o you_o shall_v be_v deliver_v from_o all_o danger_n if_o you_o will_v obey_v i_o command_v say_v the_o abbot_n all_o that_o you_o please_v and_o you_o shall_v be_v willing_o obey_v hereafter_o then_o say_v he_o you_o shall_v keep_v a_o solemn_a feast_n of_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o in_o preach_v you_o shall_v declare_v that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v keep_v the_o abbot_n ask_v upon_o what_o day_n it_o shall_v be_v keep_v and_o what_o service_n the_o church_n shall_v say_v thereon_o he_o answer_v it_o shall_v be_v keep_v the_o eight_o of_o december_n and_o for_o the_o service_n they_o shall_v take_v that_o of_o the_o nativity_n put_v the_o word_n conception_n in_o lieu_n of_o nativity_n 1060._o anno_fw-la 1060._o then_o the_o personage_n vanish_v away_o the_o storm_n cease_v and_o the_o abbot_n escape_v with_o all_o his_o company_n and_o afterward_o perform_v his_o promise_n be_v not_o this_o a_o strong_a foundation_n to_o build_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n upon_o let_v the_o circumstance_n be_v consider_v as_o that_o the_o bishop_n that_o appear_v come_v from_o the_o virgin_n marie_n use_v such_o great_a familiarity_n with_o the_o abbot_n as_o to_o salute_v he_o that_o he_o appear_v in_o a_o storm_n when_o wicked_a spirit_n be_v busy_a that_o he_o will_v he_o to_o keep_v a_o feast_n of_o that_o act_n concern_v the_o bless_a virgin_n which_o can_v be_v free_v from_o sin_n and_o judge_v whether_o it_o be_v not_o time_n to_o fly_v to_o the_o scripture_n reveal_v from_o god_n when_o such_o vision_n must_v serve_v as_o it_o be_v probable_o devise_v by_o the_o devil_n to_o delude_v man_n withal_o for_o the_o establishment_n of_o a_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n as_o diverse_a of_o the_o roman_a church_n hold_v this_o to_o be_v it_o may_v be_v this_o vision_n may_v be_v such_o a_o one_o as_o i_o have_v sometime_o hear_v of_o the_o like_a nature_n by_o a_o certain_a gentleman_n as_o acquaintance_n of_o i_o who_o tell_v i_o that_o one_o appear_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o form_n of_o a_o bishop_n tell_v he_o he_o must_v be_v a_o roman_a catholic_a if_o he_o will_v be_v save_v and_o that_o he_o shall_v travel_v over_o the_o sea_n escape_v many_o danger_n acquaint_v he_o with_o future_a event_n concern_v the_o earl_n of_o essex_n and_o himself_o which_o he_o will_v not_o speak_v of_o which_o vision_n some_o of_o his_o kindred_n give_v credit_n unto_o and_o further_v he_o in_o his_o journey_n and_o i_o have_v hear_v since_o when_o his_o money_n be_v spend_v beyond_o the_o sea_n he_o return_v home_o again_o and_o find_v himself_o delude_v by_o his_o vision_n embrace_v again_o his_o former_a religion_n and_o continue_v in_o it_o to_o this_o day_n some_o romanist_n have_v think_v that_o this_o vision_n be_v but_o a_o invention_n that_o thereby_o he_o may_v find_v a_o few_o golden_a piece_n out_o of_o his_o friend_n the_o better_a to_o maintain_v his_o travail_n the_o truth_n of_o his_o vision_n i_o leave_v to_o his_o own_o conscience_n but_o this_o i_o may_v true_o say_v there_o be_v a_o great_a resemblance_n betwixt_o he_o and_o the_o abbot_n and_o therefore_o in_o my_o judgement_n if_o the_o devil_n play_v the_o bishop_n in_o the_o one_o he_o may_v as_o well_o do_v it_o in_o the_o other_o 5._o ibid._n another_o apparition_n to_o the_o same_o effect_n ibidem_fw-la part_n 7._o diony_n cor._n ser_n 2._o conc._n be._n mariae_fw-la polbert_n ibid._n i_o have_v note_v another_o apparition_n record_v by_o diverse_a writer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n tend_v to_o the_o same_o purpose_n viz_o to_o make_v good_a the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_fw-mi conception_n without_o original_a sin_n in_o the_o time_n of_o charles_n king_n of_o france_n a_o certain_a young_a man_n nephew_n to_o the_o king_n of_o hungary_n love_v so_o much_o the_o virgin_n marie_n and_o be_v so_o addict_v to_o her_o service_n that_o daily_o before_o he_o eat_v any_o thing_n he_o say_v her_o hour_n who_o fall_v upon_o a_o time_n into_o a_o great_a infirmity_n and_o sickness_n vow_v his_o chastity_n unto_o she_o if_o she_o will_v help_v to_o save_v his_o life_n forthwith_o the_o chamber_n be_v replenish_v with_o a_o great_a light_n and_o he_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o health_n soon_o after_o his_o uncle_n die_v without_o issue_n which_o make_v the_o lord_n of_o the_o country_n to_o persuade_v he_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o estate_n of_o marriage_n to_o the_o end_n the_o kingdom_n may_v not_o be_v without_o heir_n offer_v he_o a_o fair_a lady_n which_o he_o marry_v but_o after_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o blessing_n he_o remember_v that_o he_o have_v not_o yet_o that_o day_n read_v our_o lady_n office_n he_o retire_v himself_o to_o say_v they_o the_o more_o devout_o send_v the_o lady_n bride_n with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o company_n home_n to_o his_o house_n and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o anthieme_n pulchra_n es_fw-la &_o decora_fw-la filia_fw-la jerusalem_n that_o be_v to_o say_v thou_o be_v fair_a and_o gracious_a o_o daughter_n of_o jerusalem_n sudden_o the_o virgin_n marie_n appear_v unto_o he_o with_o two_o angel_n attend_v she_o and_o say_v unto_o he_o if_o i_o be_o fair_a honest_a and_o gracious_a as_o thou_o say_v wherefore_o do_v thou_o forsake_v i_o for_o another_o be_o not_o i_o more_o beautiful_a than_o she_o o_o lady_n say_v he_o your_o beauty_n surpass_v all_o the_o beauty_n of_o the_o world_n thou_o be_v exalt_v above_o the_o angel_n what_o be_v your_o pleasure_n that_o i_o shall_v do_v if_o you_o leave_v say_v she_o your_o carnal_a espouse_v for_o the_o love_n of_o i_o you_o shall_v have_v i_o for_o wife_n in_o heaven_n and_o if_o you_o will_v keep_v a_o yearly_a solemn_a feast_n every_o year_n upon_o the_o eight_o day_n of_o december_n of_o my_o conception_n teach_v other_o to_o keep_v it_o you_o shall_v be_v crown_v with_o i_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o my_o son_n when_o she_o have_v speak_v these_o word_n she_o vanish_v out_o of_o sight_n and_o the_o young_a man_n transpoet_v himself_o out_o of_o the_o city_n and_o kingdom_n into_o a_o wilderness_n where_o his_o comportement_fw-fr be_v so_o holy_a that_o since_o he_o be_v make_v patriarch_n of_o aquil●ia_n where_o he_o preach_v and_o institute_v the_o say_a feast_n story_n collection_n upon_o this_o story_n judge_n now_o gentle_a reader_n whether_o this_o be_v a_o apparition_n likely_a to_o come_v from_o heaven_n when_o that_o which_o be_v command_v here_o be_v so_o express_o against_o the_o word_n of_o god_n invite_v from_o that_o state_n of_o marriage_n which_o the_o apostle_n call_v honourable_a unto_o the_o service_n of_o that_o feign_a and_o devise_v privilege_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_fw-mi conception_n without_o original_a sin_n which_o i_o have_v already_o show_v to_o be_v express_o repugnant_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o therefore_o diametral_o against_o faith_n beside_o the_o institution_n itself_o be_v so_o late_o that_o it_o appear_v to_o be_v cockle_n sow_v by_o the_o envious_a man_n the_o devil_n not_o by_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n and_o therefore_o not_o to_o be_v receive_v by_o those_o who_o know_v antiquity_n to_o be_v the_o infallible_a mark_n of_o truth_n the_o due_a observation_n of_o all_o which_o premise_n consider_v in_o this_o chapter_n be_v as_o forcible_a a_o inducement_n to_o lead_v my_o foot_n out_o of_o the_o dangerous_a way_n of_o romish_a novelty_n as_o any_o other_o therefore_o courteous_a reader_n let_v i_o entreat_v thou_o with_o i_o to_o call_v the_o virgin_n marry_o most_o bless_a among_o woman_n as_o true_o she_o be_v upon_o earth_n and_o be_v so_o also_o in_o heaven_n in_o the_o glory_n of_o her_o soul_n but_o think_v she_o not_o yet_o so_o bless_v as_o in_o this_o point_n of_o her_o conception_n to_o parallel_v she_o with_o christ_n
much_o in_o one_o of_o his_o epistle_n to_o make_v mention_n or_o to_o give_v salutation_n to_o his_o consort_n philippian_n 4._o who_o he_o therefore_o deni_v himself_o to_o carry_v about_o that_o he_o may_v be_v the_o more_o ready_a to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n 1._o epistle_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o corinthian_n and_o again_o in_o the_o eight_o book_n of_o his_o work_n he_o say_v they_o say_v that_o saint_n peter_n when_o he_o see_v his_o wife_n lead_v unto_o martyrdom_n he_o rejoice_v in_o the_o grace_n of_o election_n and_o at_o her_o return_n unto_o she_o own_o house_n and_o cry_v out_o unto_o she_o when_o she_o be_v lead_v and_o call_v she_o by_o her_o name_n say_v o_o wife_n remember_v the_o lord_n such_o be_v the_o marriage_n of_o saint_n so_o perfect_a be_v the_o affection_n of_o the_o bless_a thus_o he_o who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n one_o hundred_o ninety_o and_o seven_o in_o the_o time_n of_o commodus_n the_o emperor_n by_o which_o doctrine_n and_o example_n in_o the_o apostle_n time_n it_o be_v very_o evident_a that_o priest_n and_o bishop_n have_v wife_n 5_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v decree_v thus_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n shall_v not_o quis_fw-la the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n prove_v by_o ancient_a counsel_n dist_n 28._o canon_n si_fw-mi quis_fw-la under_o the_o colour_n of_o religion_n cast_v away_o his_o own_o wife_n but_o if_o he_o do_v reject_v she_o he_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v but_o if_o he_o shall_v persevere_v he_o shall_v be_v deprive_v which_o canon_n be_v relate_v in_o a_o other_o place_n the_o most_o renown_a general_a council_n also_o hold_v at_o nice_a in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n three_o hundred_o and_o thirty_o where_o be_v likewise_o assemble_v three_o hundred_o and_o eighteen_o whereof_o also_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o the_o tripartite_a history_n and_o elsewhere_o in_o the_o which_o caution_n be_v make_v with_o full_a consent_n of_o all_o the_o father_n not_o to_o prohibit_v subdeacons_n deacon_n sya●d_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 14._o &_o do_v 31._o can_n ny●en_n sya●d_n priest_n or_o bishop_n from_o sleep_v with_o their_o wife_n lest_o by_o that_o mean_v a_o yoke_n shall_v be_v impose_v upon_o they_o which_o may_v be_v a_o cause_n of_o fornication_n in_o which_o bufinesse_n paphnutius_fw-la who_o be_v himself_o single_a and_o most_o famous_a for_o lead_v holiness_n of_o life_n and_o power_n of_o do_v miracle_n labour_v and_o obtain_v very_o much_o again_o as_o in_o succeed_a age_n some_o at_o rome_n will_v have_v induce_v priest_n and_o deacon_n unto_o single_a life_n or_o to_o abstinence_n from_o their_o wife_n and_o go_v about_o to_o make_v law_n to_o this_o purpose_n so_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n god_n six_o hundred_o seaventie_o and_o seven_o the_o six_o general_a council_n be_v gather_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n the_o four_o whereat_o there_o be_v present_a two_o hundred_o four_o score_n and_o nine_o bishop_n for_o which_o cause_n some_o will_v have_v it_o of_o the_o same_o authority_n with_o the_o evangelicall_a book_n in_o which_o council_n some_o thing_n concern_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n be_v decree_v make_v mention_n of_o they_o who_o at_o rome_n labour_v much_o in_o that_o matter_n the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n be_v record_v in_o the_o corpse_n of_o the_o connon_n law_n in_o these_o very_a word_n romam_fw-la dist_n 31._o can_n quoniam_fw-la in_o romam_fw-la for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o understand_v it_o to_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o order_n of_o the_o roman_a canon_n that_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v deacon_n or_o priest_n shall_v not_o accompany_v with_o their_o wife_n we_o follow_v the_o ancient_a canon_n of_o apostolical_a diligence_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o holy_a man_n will_v indeed_o have_v legal_a marriage_n to_o be_v of_o force_n in_o no_o case_n dissolve_v their_o marriage_n which_o their_o wife_n nor_o deprive_v they_o of_o familiarity_n together_o in_o fit_a season_n whosoever_o therefore_o shall_v be_v find_v worthy_a to_o be_v ordain_v deacon_n or_o subdeacon_n or_o priest_n such_o shall_v in_o no_o case_n be_v prohibit_v from_o ascend_v to_o such_o degree_n for_o cohabitation_n with_o his_o wife_n neither_o likewise_o shall_v they_o be_v constrain_v at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o ordination_n to_o profess_v chastity_n and_o forthwith_o sentence_n be_v pronounce_v against_o those_o that_o shall_v presume_v againt_v this_o in_o these_o word_n if_o therefore_o any_o shall_v presume_v against_o the_o apostle_n canon_n to_o deprive_v any_o priest_n or_o deacon_n from_o the_o company_n and_o communion_n of_o their_o legal_a wife_n let_v he_o be_v depose_v likewise_o the_o priest_n or_o deacon_n who_o for_o religion_n sake_n shall_v expel_v his_o wife_n let_v he_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o if_o he_o shall_v persist_v in_o this_o let_v he_o be_v depose_v the_o same_o sixth_o synod_n decree_v as_o appear_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n that_o the_o priest_n who_o live_v not_o in_o lawful_a marriage_n presbiterum_fw-la dist_n 28_o canon_n presbiterum_fw-la shall_v abstain_v from_o his_o office_n now_o when_o i_o observe_v thus_o in_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o general_a council_n mention_v to_o be_v make_v of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o i_o have_v before_o rehearse_v and_o also_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o with_o the_o general_a consent_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n those_o to_o be_v condemn_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v that_o will_v defend_v the_o roman_a canon_n or_o compel_v any_o to_o keep_v it_o i_o can_v no_o way_n satisfy_v myself_o how_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n prohibit_v now_o in_o the_o present_a church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o flat_a against_o these_o ancient_a general_a counsel_n if_o bellarmine_n assertion_n be_v true_a that_o a_o council_n be_v a_o assembly_n of_o true_a judge_n 1._o de_fw-fr council_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 18._o lib_n 2._o the_o council_n authorit_fw-fr cap._n 1._o who_o decree_n be_v necessary_o to_o be_v follow_v as_o also_o again_o if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o by_o the_o catholic_a faith_n we_o be_v to_o hold_v that_o general_a counsel_n confirm_v by_o the_o high_a bishop_n can_v err_v neither_o in_o faith_n nor_o manner_n as_o bellarmine_n in_o another_o place_n affirm_v what_o excuse_n can_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n pretend_v to_o free_v herself_o from_o disobedience_n to_o the_o aforesaid_a counsel_n and_o dischrge_v herself_o from_o heresy_n in_o not_o believe_v what_o the_o counsel_n confirm_v by_o a_o high_a bishop_n and_o by_o the_o christian_a world_n acknowledge_v the_o cite_v ancient_a counsel_n allow_v priest_n marriage_n the_o late_a council_n disallow_v they_o therefore_o the_o best_a conclusion_n that_o any_o man_n of_o judgement_n can_v make_v hereupon_o be_v that_o the_o former_a be_v to_o be_v embrace_v and_o the_o latter_a to_o be_v reject_v 6_o i_o can_v but_o wonder_v to_o see_v how_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n swerve_v from_o the_o mark_n of_o antiquity_n in_o prohibit_v or_o make_v a_o law_n to_o restrain_v priest_n from_o the_o lawful_a estate_n of_o wedlock_n priest_n proof_n of_o antiquity_n for_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n i_o find_v that_o one_o dionysius_n bishop_n of_o the_o corinthian_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antonius_n verus_n that_o be_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 164._o as_o eusebius_n relate_v 23._o euseb_n eccles_n hist_o lib._n 4_o cap._n 23._o write_v a_o epistle_n to_o the_o gnosian_o in_o the_o which_o he_o warn_v and_o entreat_v pynitus_n their_o bishop_n not_o to_o lay_v heanie_n burden_n upon_o the_o shoulder_n of_o his_o disciple_n nor_o to_o intimate_v unto_o his_o brethren_n the_o necessity_n of_o enforce_a chastity_n whereby_o the_o infirmity_n of_o many_o shall_v be_v end_n anger_v concern_v the_o which_o pynitus_n write_v back_o unto_o dionysius_n embrace_v his_o good_a advice_n and_o counsel_n and_o withal_o entreat_v he_o to_o send_v he_o whatsoever_o other_o spiritual_a food_n what_o strong_a and_o sound_a i_o have_v note_v likewise_o that_o origen_n who_o succeed_v clement_n in_o the_o school_n of_o al●xandria_n matth._n origen_n hom_n 25._o in_o matth._n about_o the_o year_n two_o hundred_o as_o saint_n hierome_n witness_v expound_v the_o gospel_n of_o saint_n matthew_n have_v leave_v these_o word_n toposteritie_n against_o the_o commander_n of_o single_a life_n the_o lord_n reprehend_v say_v he_o such_o teacher_n who_o only_o do_v not_o which_o they_o say_v but_o also_o cruel_o and_o without_o mercy_n not_o according_a to_o the_o estimation_n of_o every_o hearer_n strength_n do_v enjoin_v thing_n above_o their_o power_n as_o namely_o who_o forbid_v to_o marry_v and_o who_o compel_v from_o that_o which_o be_v expedient_a to_o immoderate_a
uncleanness_n i_o have_v read_v also_o that_o gregory_n nazianzen_n nazian_n gregor_n nazian_n bishop_n for_o the_o funeral_n of_o his_o father_n who_o be_v a_o bishop_n and_o of_o his_o gorgonia_n that_o he_o make_v most_o learned_a sermon_n in_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a to_o be_v see_v with_o what_o holiness_n the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o the_o church_n live_v in_o the_o state_n of_o wedlock_n i_o find_v further_o that_o saint_n john_n chrysostome_n upon_o those_o word_n of_o esay_n i_o see_v the_o lord_n sit_v 4._o chrysost_n hom_n 4._o speak_v most_o honourable_o of_o the_o marriage_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n who_o also_o say_v in_o another_o of_o saint_n philogonius_n that_o he_o be_v a_o advocate_n philogonio_n in_o orat_fw-la de_fw-fr s._n philogonio_n but_o afterward_o be_v make_v a_o bishop_n and_o in_o time_n of_o his_o be_v bishop_n have_v a_o lawful_a wise_a and_o a_o daughter_n i_o observe_v also_o that_o saint_n hierome_n seem_v to_o insinuate_v ephesios_n in_o 6._o cap._n pauli_n ad_fw-la ephesios_n that_o till_o his_o time_n bishop_n and_o priest_n be_v marry_v according_a to_o the_o apostle_n meaning_n let_v bishop_n and_o priest_n read_v this_o say_v he_o who_o bring_v up_o their_o child_n in_o ecular_a learning_n and_o make_v they_o to_o read_v comedy_n and_o to_o sing_v the_o lascivious_a writing_n of_o jester_n be_v breed_v up_o perhaps_o with_o ecclesiastical_a revenue_n and_o alittle_o after_o heli_n the_o priest_n himself_o be_v holy_a yet_o because_o he_o instruct_v not_o his_o child_n in_o all_o discipline_n and_o correction_n he_o fell_a down_v it_o to_o the_o ground_n and_o so_o die_v legunt_fw-la distinct_a 37._o canone_o legunt_fw-la which_o word_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n i_o find_v also_o saint_n ambrose_n to_o say_v that_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o body_n be_v to_o be_v wish_v for_o by_o we_o which_o of_o counsel_n i_o persuade_v integritas_fw-la quaest_n 32._o ca._n 1._o integritas_fw-la and_o not_o out_o of_o power_n do_v command_v for_o virginity_n alone_o be_v that_o which_o may_v be_v persuade_v and_o may_v not_o be_v command_v it_o be_v a_o matter_n rather_o of_o wish_n then_o of_o precept_n which_o word_n do_v not_o a_o little_a tax_v they_o that_o enact_v law_n to_o make_v man_n live_v single_a life_n neither_o be_v saint_n chrysostom_n word_n unlike_a unto_o those_o of_o saint_n ambrose_n jimoth_n hom._n 10._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la jimoth_n who_o treat_v of_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n speak_v most_o plain_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a for_o he_o that_o will_v honest_o to_o embrace_v marriage_n for_o as_o riches_n do_v difficult_o lead_v into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n yet_o many_o rich_a man_n have_v often_o enter_v thither_o even_o so_o marriage_n though_o they_o have_v many_o difficulty_n in_o they_o yet_o they_o may_v be_v so_o use_v as_o not_o to_o be_v any_o impediment_n to_o perfection_n of_o life_n who_o in_o another_o place_n speak_v more_o plain_o upon_o those_o word_n of_o saint_n paul_n whosoever_o without_o fault_n be_v a_o man_n of_o one_o wife_n tit._n chrysost_o hom_n 2._o in_o epist_n ad_fw-la tit._n say_v thus_o the_o apostle_n intend_v to_o stop_v her_o mouth_n of_o heretic_n that_o condemn_v marriage_n show_v that_o thing_n to_o want_v fault_n yea_o to_o be_v soprecious_o that_o therewith_o also_o any_o body_n may_v be_v promote_v unto_o the_o holy_a seat_n of_o a_o bishop_n i_o find_v further_o that_o primasius_n a_o disciple_n of_o saint_n augustine_n as_o some_o hold_n where_o the_o aostle_n prescribe_v what_o kind_n of_o child_n bishop_n child_n ought_v to_o be_v do_v not_o obscure_o handle_v this_o matter_n apostoli_fw-la primus_fw-la super_fw-la verba_fw-la apostoli_fw-la when_o he_o say_v he_o that_o have_v not_o know_v how_o to_o instruct_v a_o few_o child_n how_o shall_v he_o govern_v so_o many_o child_n of_o god_n that_o be_v all_o the_o people_n neither_o be_v history_n of_o antiquity_n want_v to_o prove_v the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n eusebius_n have_v leave_v record_v that_o polycrates_n bishop_n of_o the_o ephesian_n make_v mention_n of_o seven_o of_o his_o predecessor_n 24._o euseb_n eccles_n hist_o lib._n 5._o c._n 24._o of_o who_o he_o be_v bear_v who_o in_o order_n be_v bishop_n and_o himself_o to_o have_v be_v the_o eight_o who_o word_n also_o saint_n hierome_n report_v who_o live_v in_o the_o timne_n of_o severus_n 42._o in_o lib._n de_fw-la scripto_fw-la eccles_n hist_o eccles_n lib._n 6._o cap._n 42._o the_o same_o author_n likewise_o have_v leave_v record_v that_o cheremon_n bishop_n of_o nilus_n a_o town_n of_o egyyt_n with_o his_o age_a wife_n be_v banish_v for_o christ_n which_o author_n make_v mention_v also_o of_o diverse_a other_o marry_a bishop_n i_o have_v find_v that_o spiridion_n bishop_n of_o tremithunth_n a_o husbandman_n also_o in_o the_o bishopric_n of_o the_o cyprian_n 10._o hisotr_n tripartit_fw-la lib._n 〈◊〉_d cap._n cap._n 10._o and_o a_o shepherd_n of_o sheep_n have_v wife_n and_o child_n neither_o for_o that_o be_v he_o the_o less_o famous_a for_o divine_a matter_n i_o have_v read_v also_o that_o eupsychius_n of_o caesaria_n in_o capadocea_n priest_n 14._o histor_n tripartii_fw-la lib._n 5._o cap._n 14._o when_o he_o be_v but_o new_o marry_v at_o that_o time_n to_o have_v end_v his_o life_n with_o a_o glorious_a martyrdom_n many_o other_o may_v be_v allege_v and_o this_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n in_o the_o east_n many_o out_o of_o their_o own_o free_a will_n even_o bishop_n abstain_v 38._o tripartit_fw-la hist_o lib._n 9_o cap._n 38._o and_o many_o of_o they_o also_o in_o time_n of_o their_o bishopricke_n by_o their_o lawful_a wife_n have_v child_n neither_o be_v it_o the_o custom_n in_o the_o east_n but_o also_o in_o the_o west_n church_n hilary_n bishop_n of_o pictavia_n be_v well_o know_v and_o be_v report_v by_o many_o to_o have_v be_v marry_v the_o word_n of_o damasus_n be_v plain_a who_o say_v hieron_n exquadam_n epist_n ad_fw-la diwm_fw-la hieron_n os●us_n pope_n be_v the_o son_n of_o steven_n a_o subdeacon_n boniface_n pope_n be_v the_o son_n of_o jucundus_fw-la priest_n de_fw-fr titulo_fw-la fasciolae_fw-la agapetus_n pope_n the_o son_n of_o gordian_a priest_n theodorus_n pope_n the_o son_n of_o theodorus_n bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o jerusalem_n siluerius_n pope_n son_n of_o hormista_n bishop_n of_o rome_n deusdedit_n pope_n son_n of_o jucundus_fw-la priest_n felix_n the_o three_o a_o roman_a son_n of_o felix_n priest_n who_o be_v his_o father_n gelasius_n a_o african_a be_v bear_v of_o his_o father_n valerius_n bishop_n and_o many_o other_o be_v find_v who_o have_v govern_v the_o apostolical_a sea_n that_o be_v bear_v of_o priest_n thus_o much_o say_v damasus_n pope_n who_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 380._o and_o a_o little_a after_o gratianus_n ad_fw-la canonem_fw-la cenomanensem_fw-la add_v that_o they_o be_v bear_v in_o lawful_a marriage_n which_o then_o be_v every_o where_o free_a for_o priest_n i_o omit_v to_o speak_v of_o nicholas_n the_o first_o who_o will_v not_o trouble_v the_o bulgarian_a priest_n for_o marriage_n but_o suffer_v they_o quiet_o to_o live_v in_o that_o estate_n consulendum_fw-la rescriptum_fw-la eius_fw-la ad_fw-la bulgaros_fw-la do_v 28._o canone_o consulendum_fw-la who_o live_v about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 866._o and_o so_o i_o overpass_a many_o other_o pope_n after_o his_o time_n who_o be_v son_n to_o bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o may_v easy_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o platina_n who_o write_v their_o life_n by_o all_o which_o proof_n both_o out_o of_o holy_a father_n and_o ancient_a historiographer_n i_o find_v the_o state_n of_o marriage_n justifiable_a before_o god_n and_o man_n 7_o now_o when_o the_o law_n come_v in_o that_o debar_v they_o of_o this_o privilege_n and_o honourable_a estate_n it_o be_v easy_o to_o be_v discover_v rome_n the_o prohibition_n of_o priest_n marriage_n when_o it_o come_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v in_o the_o time_n of_o siricius_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n 380._o year_n after_o christ_n before_o which_o time_n it_o be_v believe_v and_o practise_v that_o priest_n may_v have_v wife_n as_o free_o as_o other_o man_n and_o siricius_n be_v the_o first_o that_o forbid_v it_o i_o find_v first_o that_o before_o his_o time_n priest_n exercise_v their_o function_n be_v marry_v man_n 4._o adverse_a haeres_fw-la verb._n sacerdot_n haeres_fw-la 4._o asis_fw-la acknowledge_v by_o alphonsus_n who_o write_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o he_o which_o be_v marry_v may_v be_v promote_v to_o priesthood_n though_o it_o be_v not_o require_v of_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v first_o be_v marry_v &_o he_o add_v that_o this_o eustome_n prevail_v till_o the_o time_n of_o the_o nycene_n council_n
and_o diverse_a other_o writer_n affirm_v 51._o scot._n 3._o d._n 37._o cost_n enchir._n pag._n 51._o that_o in_o the_o most_o ancient_a time_n of_o the_o church_n and_o after_o the_o apostle_n death_n they_o have_v their_o wife_n and_o i_o observe_v that_o he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o forbid_v priest_n to_o marry_v 460._o greg._n à_fw-fr valent._n tom_n 4._o do_v sp_z 9_o q._n 5._o punct_a 5._o §._o 1._o dist_n 82._o plurim_fw-la invent_v lib._n 5._o cap._n 4._o dist_n 84._o cum_fw-la in_o preterito_fw-la gloss_n §._o qui_fw-fr sacrament_n index_n expurg_n 381._o vum_fw-la 261._o naucler_n tom_fw-mi 2._o generate_fw-la 137._o jnuent_v lib._n 5._o cap._n 4._o sigebert_n a_o 1074._o lambert_n pag._n 201._o &_o 207._o aventine_n in_o annal._n lib._n 5._o naucl●r_n vol._n 2._o ge_o 36._o baron_fw-fr a_o 174._o sigon_n reg_fw-la jtal._n lib._n 9_o a_o 174._o pag._n 448._o pag._n 460._o by_o the_o decree_n thereof_o extant_a in_o the_o canon_n law_n as_o also_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o polydore_n virgil_n and_o the_o gloss_n upon_o the_o canon_n law_n say_v syricius_n bring_v in_o the_o continency_n of_o priest_n and_o deacon_n yea_o some_o affirm_v that_o of_o old_a before_o the_o time_n of_o siricius_n priest_n may_v contract_v marriage_n this_o gloss_n pius_fw-la quintus_fw-la the_o late_a pope_n have_v command_v to_o be_v wipe_v out_o because_o it_o make_v against_o the_o present_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o nauclerus_fw-la say_v in_o effect_n as_o much_o that_o syrincius_n command_v deacon_n to_o be_v continent_n but_o although_o pope_n syricius_n begin_v this_o matter_n yet_o as_o polydore_n virgil_n say_v it_o can_v never_o be_v effect_v that_o their_o marriage_n shall_v be_v take_v away_o till_o gregory_n the_o seven_o come_v to_o be_v pope_n in_o the_o year_n 1074._o which_o thing_n when_o he_o attempt_v in_o germany_n he_o be_v oppose_v against_o as_o one_o that_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a eustome_n never_o receive_v before_o aventine_n write_v that_o in_o those_o day_n priest_n have_v wife_n open_o as_o other_o man_n bad_a and_o beget_v child_n their_o wife_n be_v call_v by_o aseemely_a name_n presbyteress_n and_o when_o the_o pope_n forbid_v they_o marriage_n this_o to_o many_o bishop_n and_o other_o learned_a and_o good_a man_n seem_v a_o new_a doctrine_n and_o a_o pestilent_a heresy_n as_o ever_o trouble_v any_o christian_a kingdom_n and_o he_o say_v the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n germany_n and_o france_n meet_v together_o and_o for_o this_o cause_n decree_v that_o he_o have_v do_v against_o christian_a piety_n and_o depose_v he_o for_o that_o among_o diverse_a other_o thing_n he_o divorce_v man_n and_o their_o wife_n deny_v such_o as_o bad_a their_o lawful_a wife_n to_o be_v priest_n when_o yet_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o admit_v to_o the_o altar_n whore-monger_n adulterer_n and_o incestuous_a person_n 1._o fast_o lib._n 1._o mantuan_n say_v that_o hilary_n a_o fench_n bishop_n be_v marry_v and_o that_o in_o his_o time_n it_o be_v lawful_a sinesius_n the_o bishop_n of_o ptolomais_n write_v thus_o of_o himself_o 55._o epist_n ad_fw-la enopt_n &_o niceph._n lib._n 14._o cap._n 55._o the_o sacred_a hand_n of_o theophilus_n have_v give_v i_o a_o wife_n and_o hereupon_o i_o testify_v unto_o all_o man_n that_o i_o will_v neither_o forsake_v she_o nor_o yet_o as_o a_o adulterer_n keep_v her_o company_n but_o i_o will_v pray_v god_n to_o send_v i_o by_o her_o many_o and_o good_a child_n athanasius_n report_v that_o bishop_n and_o monk_n live_v marry_v vita_fw-la epist_n ade_fw-ge dracont_v epist_n 321._o pius_fw-la 2._o apud_fw-la plaitn_n in_o vita_fw-la and_o have_v child_n and_o pius_fw-la secundus_fw-la say_v it_o be_v better_a for_o a_o priest_n to_o marry_v then_o to_o burn_v though_o he_o have_v vow_v not_o to_o marry_v and_o moreover_o that_o there_o be_v many_o reason_n to_o forbid_v priest_n marriage_n but_o more_o to_o allow_v it_o but_o no_o marvel_n that_o this_o restraint_n be_v make_v by_o the_o pope_n since_o the_o prohibition_n of_o marriage_n be_v a_o plain_a mark_n of_o antichrist_n who_o shall_v bring_v in_o the_o contempt_n of_o woman_n for_o after_o that_o the_o prophet_n daniel_n have_v say_v that_o antichrist_n shall_v persecute_v the_o holy_a teacher_n and_o the_o pious_a believe_a people_n 11._o daniel_n 11._o and_o shall_v exalt_v himself_o above_o all_o god_n he_o add_v he_o shall_v know_v nothing_o of_o the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n and_o he_o shall_v know_v nothing_o of_o the_o love_n of_o woman_n and_o of_o every_o god_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v magnify_v himself_o above_o all_o thing_n which_o version_n agree_v with_o the_o hebrew_n truth_n and_o with_o the_o seventie_o interpreter_n and_o aquila_n therefore_o let_v not_o any_o man_n oppose_v that_o which_o be_v carry_v about_o and_o in_o which_o it_o be_v read_v he_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o concupiscence_n of_o woman_n where_o saint_n hierome_n himself_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o daniel_n interprete_v this_o sentence_n thus_o that_o antichrist_n shall_v counterfeit_v chastity_n to_o deceive_v many_o by_o all_o which_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o this_o law_n restrain_v priest_n from_o marry_v be_v a_o novelty_n bring_v into_o the_o church_n by_o pope_n by_o degree_n and_o a_o great_a wrong_n unto_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n which_o i_o have_v show_v to_o be_v honourable_a in_o all_o this_o i_o can_v exemplify_v by_o the_o abuse_n come_v into_o the_o church_n by_o this_o restraint_n both_o in_o former_a age_n and_o in_o this_o present_a age_n wherein_o we_o live_v if_o this_o law_n have_v not_o be_v it_o be_v likely_a that_o matthaeus_n parisiensis_fw-la will_v have_v have_v no_o cause_n to_o leave_v record_v unto_o posterity_n that_o a_o cardinal_n do_v all_o the_o day_n in_o a_o synod_n here_o in_o england_n inveigh_v against_o the_o marriage_n of_o priest_n primum_fw-la matth._n parisan_n henric._n primum_fw-la who_o at_o night_n be_v take_v in_o bed_n with_o a_o strumpet_n there_o be_v too_o many_o to_o be_v find_v as_o carnal_a as_o this_o cardinal_n if_o this_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o restrain_v priest_n from_o marry_v occasion_n will_v never_o have_v be_v give_v for_o a_o gentleman_n in_o wales_n this_o last_o year_n to_o have_v write_v unto_o master_n birkhead_n the_o archpriest_n complain_v of_o a_o jesuite_n who_o by_o the_o heat_n of_o the_o powder-treason_n be_v think_v to_o be_v drive_v into_o ireland_n where_o he_o get_v his_o own_o kinswoman_n with_o child_n neither_o will_v many_o the_o like_a abuse_n be_v complain_v of_o in_o diverse_a if_o the_o wicked_a restraint_n of_o marriage_n which_o be_v in_o truth_n the_o very_a doctrine_n of_o devil_n have_v never_o be_v make_v and_o invent_v gentle_a reader_n pardon_v i_o if_o these_o obscaenity_n offend_v your_o ear_n i_o may_v as_o well_o relate_v truth_n in_o justification_n of_o true_a doctrine_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o that_o church_n both_o by_o report_n and_o print_a book_n may_v disgorge_v multitude_n of_o lie_n against_o the_o reform_a church_n of_o england_n your_o dear_a country_n i_o do_v not_o this_o of_o any_o delight_n i_o take_v to_o walk_v in_o the_o way_n of_o sinner_n bt_v only_o to_o discover_v the_o wickedness_n of_o their_o doctrine_n by_o such_o their_o wicked_a fruit_n as_o just_a punishment_n inflict_v by_o god_n permission_n that_o they_o may_v see_v their_o error_n and_o forsake_v their_o wicked_a way_n now_o therefore_o since_o it_o appear_v unto_o i_o by_o these_o premise_n how_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n against_o the_o law_n of_o god_n against_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o pure_a age_n to_o the_o scandal_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n through_o satan_n craft_n under_o pretence_n of_o chastity_n restrain_v priest_n from_o lawful_a marriage_n i_o can_v not_o remain_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n lest_o by_o god_n permission_n in_o time_n i_o may_v also_o be_v partaker_n of_o her_o just_a punishment_n 8_o and_o as_o i_o be_v move_v to_o abandon_v she_o by_o reason_n of_o this_o illusion_n whereby_o the_o devil_n make_v she_o he_o marriage_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n allow_v of_o incestuous_a marriage_n so_o be_v i_o no_o less_o move_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o her_o doctrine_n permit_v such_o marriage_n to_o be_v lawful_a in_o such_o degree_n as_o some_o of_o their_o own_o teach_v to_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n &_o nature_n as_o namely_o by_o suffer_v one_o brother_n to_o marry_v his_o brother_n wife_n when_o the_o other_o be_v decease_v for_o so_o do_v the_o pope_n by_o dispence_v in_o this_o case_n which_o notwithstanding_o be_v just_o to_o be_v reproove_v as_o i_o prove_v out_o of_o joannes_n viguerius_n the_o learned_a bishop_n of_o spain_n who_o deliver_v his_o doctrine_n thus_o it_o be_v a_o doubt_n modicum_fw-la io._n viguer_n
by_o the_o secret_a virtue_n of_o the_o stone_n after_o a_o invisible_a manner_n adjoin_v the_o ring_n together_o a_o goodly_a entire_a chain_n be_v make_v of_o they_o even_o so_o dear_o belove_v christian_n reader_n i_o find_v christ_n jesus_n to_o have_v be_v such_o a_o powerful_a and_o attractive_a loadstone_n unto_o my_o soul_n by_o the_o precedent_a observation_n linck_n the_o one_o unto_o the_o other_o with_o such_o infallible_a truth_n that_o therewith_o even_o as_o with_o a_o most_o strong_a chain_n of_o his_o excessive_a love_n and_o charity_n he_o have_v now_o at_o the_o length_n draw_v i_o to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o true_a faith_n right_o teach_v and_o profess_v in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 2_o it_o be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o chain_n of_o charity_n observation_n a_o brief_a recapitulation_n of_o the_o premise_a observation_n by_o which_o he_o have_v draw_v i_o to_o write_v this_o treatise_n for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o truth_n to_o those_o that_o be_v ignorant_a thereof_o it_o be_v a_o chain_n of_o his_o providence_n by_o minister_a occasion_n of_o time_n person_n and_o place_n concur_v to_o my_o conversion_n it_o be_v a_o chain_n of_o truth_n that_o every_o man_n chief_a business_n in_o this_o life_n must_v be_v to_o attain_v unto_o the_o end_n he_o be_v create_v unto_o by_o god_n or_o else_o he_o receive_v his_o soul_n in_o vain_a it_o be_v a_o chain_n reach_v from_o heaven_n that_o a_o supernatural_a and_o reveal_v knowledge_n from_o god_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n the_o observation_n also_o of_o a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o a_o supernatural_a faith_n be_v a_o strong_a chain_n to_o draw_v any_o man_n to_o search_v diligent_o after_o it_o the_o knowledge_n likewise_o of_o the_o right_a rule_n and_o golden_a mete-wand_n of_o true_a faith_n consist_v of_o god_n sacred_a word_n be_v a_o most_o forcible_a chain_n to_o draw_v christian_n unto_o the_o right_a knowledge_n of_o god_n truth_n the_o true_a know_v visible_a church_n of_o christ_n teach_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v a_o powerful_a chain_n to_o draw_v man_n unto_o the_o right_a faith_n of_o christ_n jesus_n conformity_n of_o doctrine_n with_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v a_o proper_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n be_v likewise_o a_o most_o attractive_a chain_n draw_v to_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o right_a christianity_n the_o wonder_n and_o suppose_a miracle_n which_o christ_n foretold_v the_o pseudo-christs_n and_o false_a prophet_n shall_v do_v for_o the_o seduce_a of_o god_n elect_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a be_v also_o a_o strong_a chain_n to_o draw_v any_o man_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o great_a hypocrisy_n of_o false_a teacher_n fore-spoken_a of_o in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n agree_v chief_o with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v a_o chain_n of_o great_a strength_n and_o power_n to_o draw_v any_o man_n from_o that_o church_n the_o fruit_n by_o which_o false_a prophet_n be_v to_o be_v know_v and_o discern_v abound_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v also_o a_o powerful_a chain_n to_o draw_v any_o man_n of_o true_a judgement_n from_o the_o abhominiation_n of_o that_o church_n the_o discovery_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n to_o be_v idolatrous_a which_o be_v account_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o chief_a act_n of_o religion_n that_o can_v be_v do_v to_o god_n be_v a_o most_o forcible_a chain_n to_o draw_v any_o man_n to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n jesus_n once_o offer_v for_o we_o procure_v our_o sanctification_n be_v not_o the_o proof_n of_o transubstantiation_n also_o to_o be_v a_o novelty_n a_o potent_a chain_n to_o draw_v any_o man_n from_o rome_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n where_o the_o sacrament_n be_v free_v from_o such_o disgrace_n be_v not_o the_o amputation_n also_o of_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n a_o powerful_a chain_n to_o draw_v man_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o they_o may_v right_o according_a to_o christ_n institution_n be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n else_o where_o be_v not_o also_o the_o novelty_n of_o the_o pope_n pardon_n and_o indulgence_n which_o be_v annex_v to_o cross_n grain_n and_o medal_n a_o powerful_a chain_n to_o draw_v any_o man_n that_o be_v not_o ridiculous_o childish_a a_o strong_a chain_n to_o draw_v he_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o seven_o sacrament_n be_v well_o discover_v by_o any_o man_n be_v can_v not_o want_v a_o strong_a chain_n to_o draw_v he_o to_o acknowledgement_n of_o two_o true_a sacrament_n institute_v by_o christ_n if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_fw-mi conception_n in_o original_a sin_n be_v doubtful_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n show_v it_o certain_a may_v serve_v for_o a_o strong_a chain_n to_o draw_v any_o man_n from_o that_o doubtfulness_n if_o the_o pretend_a chastity_n of_o the_o romish_a clergy_n do_v make_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n seem_v more_o pure_a and_o holy_a than_o any_o other_o the_o prohibition_n of_o lawful_a marriage_n to_o priest_n and_o the_o dispensation_n and_o permission_n of_o unlawful_a marriage_n to_o kindred_n may_v be_v as_o a_o strong_a chain_n to_o draw_v deceive_v soul_n from_o the_o filth_n and_o impurity_n of_o her_o hypocritical_a holiness_n by_o these_o the_o mighty_a strength_n &_o power_n of_o all_o those_o chain_n have_v the_o goodness_n of_o almighty_a god_n deliver_v my_o long_a estraied_a soul_n out_o of_o her_o dangerous_a way_n &_o settle_v i_o in_o the_o happy_a society_n of_o his_o true_a faithful_a believer_n teach_v the_o true_a ancient_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a faith_n oh_o how_o true_o may_v i_o now_o say_v with_o holy_a david_n in_o humble_a acknowledgement_n of_o god_n singular_a mercy_n unto_o my_o soul_n marvellous_a be_v thy_o work_n 139.14_o psal_n 139.14_o o_o lord_n and_o that_o my_o soul_n know_v right_a well_o 3._o now_o it_o be_v time_n priest_n to_o all_o seminary_n priest_n o_o all_o you_o seminary_n priest_n in_o this_o land_n or_o else_o where_o who_o labour_n still_o in_o the_o same_o blindness_n and_o error_n wherein_o hitherto_o i_o have_v be_v myself_o enwrap_v as_o in_o a_o dark_a cloud_n that_o out_o of_o that_o true_a charity_n and_o zeal_n of_o your_o soul_n good_a and_o happiness_n wherewith_o i_o have_v cause_n to_o be_v affect_v towards_o you_o i_o direct_v my_o speech_n a_o while_n unto_o you_o and_o manifest_v the_o sincere_a candour_n of_o my_o heart_n and_o affection_n to_o pity_v your_o case_n as_o i_o have_v have_v cause_n to_o be_v sorry_a for_o it_o heretofore_o in_o myself_o and_o therefore_o i_o can_v not_o but_o admonish_v you_o of_o the_o peril_n you_o live_v in_o both_o of_o body_n and_o soul_n for_o look_v no_o better_a into_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o teach_v you_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n 13._o math._n 5._o vers_fw-la 13._o and_o the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o you_o have_v cause_n to_o see_v well_o that_o your_o doctrine_n be_v sound_a wherewith_o you_o season_n man_n soul_n and_o that_o the_o example_n of_o your_o virtue_n and_o life_n be_v not_o hypocritical_a and_o superstitious_a if_o your_o salt_n be_v infatuate_v with_o novelty_n and_o corrupt_a doctrine_n all_o the_o world_n will_v trample_v upon_o you_o and_o you_o be_v only_o fit_a to_o be_v cast_v out_o unto_o the_o dunghill_n if_o your_o life_n give_v no_o true_a light_n but_o be_v a_o cover_v under_o the_o appearance_n only_o of_o virtue_n as_o under_o a_o bushel_n where_o there_o be_v no_o corn_n your_o poor_a follower_n will_v be_v hunger_n starve_v and_o run_v into_o darkness_n and_o never_o find_v the_o true_a light_n of_o the_o world_n christ_n jesus_n who_o illuminate_v as_o saint_n john_n say_v 9_o joh._n 1._o vers_fw-la 9_o every_o man_n come_v into_o this_o world_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o christ_n say_v he_o that_o do_v and_o teach_v 5.19_o math._n 5.19_o shall_v be_v call_v great_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n unless_o both_o these_o duty_n go_v together_o without_o mixture_n of_o falsehood_n and_o fin_n you_o can_v neither_o be_v great_a in_o heaven_n nor_o in_o earth_n but_o certain_a i_o be_o your_o pain_n will_v be_v great_a in_o the_o deepedungeon_n of_o hell_n examine_v well_o your_o own_o conscience_n both_o for_o doctrine_n and_o conversation_n build_v not_o upon_o other_o man_n book_n only_o but_o examine_v their_o doctrine_n by_o the_o infallible_a rule_n of_o scripture_n send_v your_o disciple_n unto_o christ_n as_o saint_n john_n baptist_n do_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n who_o can_v and_o have_v err_v both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n say_v unto_o your_o child_n as_o christ_n our_o lord_n and_o master_n say_v search_v the_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n because_o
they_o give_v testimony_n of_o i_o what_o good_a will_v all_o your_o suffering_n do_v you_o what_o your_o danger_n what_o your_o imprisonment_n what_o your_o temporal_a want_n or_o abundance_n what_o your_o love_a friend_n or_o well_o affect_v kindred_n towards_o you_o what_o i_o say_v will_v all_o this_o avail_n you_o if_o your_o dectrine_n be_v unsound_a even_o in_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o what_o a_o miserable_a calamity_n be_v it_o which_o you_o bring_v your_o follower_n unto_o who_o for_o clean_v to_o your_o erroneous_a doctrine_n must_v hazard_v their_o temporal_a estate_n and_o fortune_n must_v beggar_v their_o family_n undo_v their_o posterity_n and_o which_o be_v worst_a must_v damn_v their_o soul_n for_o profess_v the_o usurp_a authority_n and_o transcendencie_n of_o a_o ambitious_a pope_n and_o other_o novelty_n through_o your_o encouragement_n look_v well_o therefore_o to_o the_o cause_n of_o your_o suffering_n and_o doctrine_n for_o christ_n say_v bless_a be_v they_o that_o suffer_v for_o justice_n sake_n 10._o math._n 5._o ver_fw-la 10._o for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n therefore_o if_o you_o suffer_v for_o injustice_n as_o for_o superstition_n for_o idolatry_n for_o heresy_n for_o disalleageance_n to_o god_n and_o your_o prince_n as_o you_o do_v i_o may_v true_o say_v that_o not_o a_o kingdom_n but_o the_o bottomless_a pit_n of_o hell_n will_v come_v to_o your_o share_n and_o lot_n since_o you_o want_v the_o garment_n of_o truth_n in_o doctrine_n with_o hand_n and_o foot_n bind_v you_o will_v in_o the_o end_n if_o you_o turn_v not_o from_o your_o wicked_a way_n be_v cast_v into_o exterior_a darkness_n where_o you_o shall_v be_v vex_v with_o most_o hideous_a howl_n and_o gnash_v of_o tooth_n my_o desire_n i_o have_v of_o your_o conversion_n make_v i_o to_o say_v unto_o you_o 16._o jere._n 6._o vers_fw-la 16._o state_z super_fw-la vias_fw-la &_o videte_fw-la stand_v you_o on_o the_o way_n and_o see_v and_o to_o ingeminate_v the_o same_o counsel_n state_n super_fw-la vias_fw-la &_o videte_fw-la stand_v you_o on_o the_o way_n and_o see_v for_o the_o way_n of_o the_o wicked_a be_v darksome_a 12._o prou._n 4._o vers_fw-la 16._o prou._n 14._o ver_fw-la 12._o they_o know_v not_o where_o they_o fall_v and_o the_o scripture_n tell_v there_o be_v a_o way_n which_o seem_v right_a unto_o a_o man_n but_o the_o issue_n thereof_o lead_v unto_o death_n out_o of_o which_o it_o have_v please_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n so_o to_o draw_v i_o that_o i_o may_v say_v his_o holy_a spirit_n have_v bring_v i_o into_o the_o right_a land_n 11_o psal_n 142._o ver_fw-la 11_o and_o to_o such_o a_o right_a way_n of_o truth_n to_o walk_v in_o wherein_o i_o find_v more_o comfort_n than_o ever_o i_o do_v in_o my_o whole_a life_n before_o in_o the_o papacy_n by_o the_o service_n and_o sacrament_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n so_o that_o for_o my_o perseverance_n therein_o from_o my_o heart_n i_o pray_v to_o god_n with_o king_n david_n o_o god_n hold_v up_o my_o step_n in_o thy_o path_n 5._o psal_n 17._o v._n 5._o that_o my_o footstep_n slip_v not_o 4._o now_o it_o be_v most_o behooveful_a also_o that_o i_o speak_v unto_o you_o all_o recusant_n false_o style_v yourselves_o catholic_n catholic_n a_o advice_n to_o all_o romish_a catholic_n that_o as_o i_o hearty_o love_v your_o person_n and_o wish_v well_o unto_o your_o soul_n i_o may_v give_v you_o good_a testimony_n thereof_o by_o admonish_v you_o not_o to_o be_v blind_o lead_v by_o other_o to_o the_o overthrow_n of_o your_o state_n in_o this_o world_n and_o eternal_a damnation_n of_o your_o soul_n in_o the_o next_o desire_v you_o in_o the_o tender_a bowel_n of_o christ_n jesus_n that_o since_o god_n have_v make_v i_o a_o spectacle_n unto_o you_o of_o his_o singular_a mercy_n not_o to_o be_v so_o foolish_o besot_v and_o ignorant_o seduce_v as_o not_o to_o make_v your_o advantage_n by_o my_o observation_n which_o doubtless_o god_n have_v help_v i_o in_o as_o well_o for_o your_o example_n and_o benefit_n as_o for_o the_o manifestation_n of_o his_o own_o goodness_n be_v not_o i_o beseech_v you_o over-credulous_a in_o easy_o believe_v every_o thing_n that_o unaduised_o your_o teacher_n shall_v suggest_v unto_o you_o but_o examine_v their_o doctrine_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n doctor_n stapleton_n prescribe_v unto_o you_o speak_v of_o in_o my_o eleven_o chapter_n num_fw-la 3.4.5_o that_o be_v by_o consider_v the_o fruit_n of_o your_o teacher_n and_o whether_o the_o doctrine_n they_o teach_v you_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o former_a time_n general_o receive_v and_o teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n believe_v not_o all_o they_o say_v of_o the_o preacher_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n who_o they_o often_o most_o notorious_o traduce_v with_o most_o false_a calumniation_n as_o namely_o i_o hear_v a_o ancient_a priest_n in_o the_o university_n of_o louvain_n some_o few_o year_n since_o report_n of_o the_o death_n of_o bishop_n juell_n calumniate_v bishop_n juell_n calumniate_v affirm_v that_o he_o travel_v here_o in_o england_n be_v take_v with_o a_o sudden_a sickness_n and_o so_o compel_v to_o light_n in_o a_o house_n where_o doctor_n harding_n have_v use_v sometime_o to_o lodge_v in_o and_o grow_v worse_o and_o worse_o he_o be_v force_v to_o betake_v himself_o to_o a_o bed_n where_o his_o pain_n increase_a by_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n because_o master_n doctor_n harding_n have_v often_o lie_v there_o before_o he_o grow_v into_o desperate_a fit_n cry_v out_o doctor_n harding_n doctor_n harding_n and_o wish_v he_o have_v never_o set_v pen_n to_o paper_n against_o he_o and_o so_o die_v as_o a_o man_n in_o despair_n in_o doctor_n harding_n bed_n this_o be_v tell_v as_o a_o remarkable_a matter_n against_o he_o for_o the_o reproof_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o magnify_v of_o master_n harding_n which_o i_o be_o inform_v by_o credible_a man_n to_o be_v most_o untrue_a and_o false_a therefore_o i_o say_v unto_o you_o again_o dear_a christian_n be_v not_o over-credulous_a but_o beware_v of_o false_a prophet_n who_o have_v their_o conscience_n so_o sear_v that_o they_o regard_v not_o how_o false_o they_o speak_v so_o they_o may_v any_o way_n traduce_v the_o credit_n and_o reputation_n of_o their_o adversary_n among_o you_o charge_v both_o caluin_n and_o luther_n and_o other_o true_a convertite_n of_o jesus_n with_o such_o thing_n as_o be_v not_o to_o be_v name_v most_o injurious_o but_o no_o marvel_n when_o otherwise_o they_o can_v defend_v their_o cause_n again_o let_v i_o obtain_v so_o much_o of_o you_o as_o to_o be_v frequent_a in_o read_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o although_o it_o have_v many_o difficult_a thing_n in_o it_o yet_o for_o so_o much_o as_o belong_v to_o faith_n and_o manner_n necessary_a for_o every_o man_n to_o know_v it_o be_v easy_a and_o facile_a if_o you_o will_v have_v a_o infallible_a rule_n by_o which_o you_o may_v know_v the_o shepherd_n which_o like_o good_a sheep_n you_o ought_v to_o follow_v remember_v that_o christ_n say_v in_o hoc_fw-la cognoscent_fw-la quod_fw-la discipuli_fw-la mei_fw-la sitis_fw-la si_fw-la charitatem_fw-la habueritis_fw-la ad_fw-la inuicem_fw-la in_o this_o man_n shall_v know_v that_o you_o be_v my_o disciple_n if_o you_o have_v charity_n one_o towards_o the_o other_o now_o whether_o you_o find_v this_o mutual_a charity_n among_o your_o or_o our_o clergy_n either_o in_o doctrine_n or_o manner_n i_o leave_v to_o your_o own_o judgement_n to_o consider_v and_o as_o for_o myself_o such_o as_o have_v be_v acquaint_v with_o i_o if_o they_o will_v say_v true_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o my_o conversation_n among_o they_o have_v always_o since_o my_o priesthood_n be_v such_o as_o can_v be_v touch_v with_o any_o kind_n of_o disorder_n my_o zeal_n in_o the_o blindness_n of_o that_o faith_n as_o forward_o as_o other_o to_o the_o small_a portion_n of_o talon_n which_o god_n have_v bestow_v upon_o i_o make_v i_o as_o ready_a by_o day_n and_o by_o night_n to_o draw_v man_n to_o the_o romish_a faith_n as_o any_o man_n either_o by_o preach_v or_o other_o labour_n with_o as_o great_a sincerity_n as_o possible_o may_v be_v no_o man_n can_v charge_v i_o of_o mercenary_a covetousness_n for_o make_v a_o monopole_n of_o any_o of_o you_o for_o i_o own_o profit_n or_o the_o wrong_n of_o other_o have_v always_o be_v as_o ready_a to_o give_v as_o to_o take_v carry_v in_o mind_n that_o of_o saint_n hierome_n say_v novatianum_fw-la epist_n ad_fw-la novatianum_fw-la ignominia_fw-la est_fw-la omnium_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la proprijs_fw-la studere_fw-la divitiis_fw-la it_o be_v a_o reproach_n of_o all_o priest_n to_o study_v to_o enrich_v themselves_o therefore_o i_o have_v never_o repine_v that_o other_o shall_v gain_v the_o profit_n of_o my_o pain_n or_o gather_v the_o fruit_n of_o my_o labour_n have_v i_o